Studies in Ibadhism
Studies in Ibadhism
Studies in Ibadhism
by
Open Mind
First in Open-Books Paperback 2007
published by
Open Mind
http://open-books.blogspot.com/
to contact:
admin.open.books@gmail.com
ACKNOWLEGEMENTS
Sincere thanks are extended to Professor R.B. Sergeant for many helpful
suggestions, discussions and criticism, which he constantly rendered throughout
the period in which he supervised the writing of this research.
Special thanks are due to many Ibadhi friends and scholars in the Ibadhi
communities of North Africa for their hospitality and unrestrained help. I am
extremely grateful to the owners of private collections of Mss. for free access to
their valuable libraries without which this work would have been impossible.
Thanks are also due to Sheikh Muhammad al-Salimi, and Salim al-Harithi of
Oman for lending me many valuable manuscripts, as well as all other friends
who have helped me in one way of another.
I would also like to thank the Libyan Ministry of Education for providing me
with a grant for the duration of this research, and the Faculty of Arts,
University of Libya, for granting me a study leave in which to undertake this
work. My thanks are also due to Pr. Omar Shaibani, the president of the
Libyan Unv, Dr. Mansur Kikhya, Dean of the faculty of Arts and Mr. Abd al-
Rahman al-Sharidi, head of printing and publication dep. to whom I owe the
publication of this work in this excellent form.
4
GENERAL NOTES
"This work was originally the English part of a thesis submitted to Cambridge
University in 1971 for the Ph.D. D. degree" The publication is made without
any alteration. The Arabic texts of that thesis will be published separate in due
course.
The translation adapted the previous work is the Middle East Center of
Cambridge University. The definite article, al- is given always the small letters
i.e. al-Wahab al-Shammakhi, etc., unless it is the beginning of a sentence. For
the title of books, only the first letter of the title is given except when the title
contains names of more than one word; i.e. the original work and a
commentary, or summary of two works, i.e. al-Wad wa al-hayah.
The footnotes are given at then end of each chapter. As most of the Mss. I used
for this study have not been numbered before, I numbered them in pages;
therefore the references are made accordingly, except where the Mss were
already numbered in folics, the reference in this case being made to folios
distinguished by letters a and b. For the Qur'anic verses quoted in this work,
the author used the translation of the late Professor Arberry, unless otherwise
stated. The reference was made to the original text of the Qur'an, the number
of the Surah, and the number of the 'Ayah and not to the translation.
For the Abbreviation of the Periodicals, the author adopted the abbreviations
given in Index Islamicas (pp. xxix; - xxx; 11, xxii – iii; xxiv-xxv).
5
Table of Contents
ACKNOWLEGEMENTS..................................................................................3
GENERAL NOTES...........................................................................................4
PREFACE..........................................................................................................7
CHAPTER I.....................................................................................................13
THE FOUNDATION OF THE IBADHIAH, AND THE IBADHI VIEWS
ON THE KHARIJITES...................................................................................13
"ABDULLAH B. IBADH".............................................................................13
IBADHI VIEWS ON THE KHARIJITES:.....................................................16
CHAPTER II....................................................................................................36
JABIR B. ZAID AL-'AZDI............................................................................36
CHAPTER III..................................................................................................53
ABU 'UBAIDAH MUSLIM B. ABI KARIMAH..........................................53
The expansion of the Ibadhiyah in North Africa............................................61
The Bears of Learning (Hamalat al-'ilm)........................................................63
CHAPTER III..................................................................................................71
IBADHI JURISPRUDENCE..........................................................................71
IBADHI CONTRIBUTION TO THE FIELD OF HADITH:.........................75
AL-JAMI AL-SAHIH:..............................................................................................76
I) Al-Mudawwanah by Abu Ghanim Bishr b. Ghanim al Khurasani:.......................79
II) Al-Diwan al-ma'rud 'ala 'Ulama' al-Ibadhiyah:....................................................81
III) K. Nikah al-Shighar by Abu Sa'id 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz:...........................83
SOME EXAMPLES For THE DIFFERENCES BETWEEN IBADHI
SCHOOL AND OTHER ISLAMIC SCHOOLS IN LEGAL AND
RELIGIOUS OPINIONS:...............................................................................88
I) WIPING OVER SHOES AS PART FO "WUDU".............................................89
II) PRAYERS (AL-SALAT)...................................................................................90
II) FASTING (AL-SAWM):....................................................................................91
IV) ZAKAT.............................................................................................
................92
II) MARRIAGE .....................................................................................................93
II) INHERITANCE.................................................................................................93
II) PENAL LAW.....................................................................................................93
CHAPTER IV................................................................................................102
IBADHI THEOLOGY..................................................................................102
The vision (al-Ru'yah):............................................................................................104
The Qur’an:...................................................................................................114
The Imamate:................................................................................................117
THE STATUS OF THE IBADHI THEOLOGY IN RELATION TO THE
MAIN ISLAMIC SCHISMS.........................................................................118
THE SUB-DIVISIONS OF THE IBADHI SECT........................................122
1. Al-Wahbiyah..................................................................................................
.123
AL-DIYANAT .............................................................................................124
6
1. Unity:....................................................................................................
..............124
2. Justice:............................................................................................................125
3. Divine decree:...................................................................................................125
4. The states of walayah and enmity:..............................................................125
5. Command and prohibition:.................................................................................126
6. Promise and threat:...........................................................................................126
7. The intermediate position:................................................................................127
8. No intermediate position:..................................................................................127
9. The names and statutes:....................................................................................127
11. al Nukkar:....................................................................................................128
III Khalafiyah................................................................................................... .132
IV al-Naffathiyah..............................................................................................133
V, VI Husainiyah and Umairiyah............................................................................135
VII al-Sakkakiyah...................................................................................................137
VII al-Farthiyah.................................................................................................137
IBADHI WORKS ON THEOLOGY............................................................138
CHAPTER V..................................................................................................162
THE SYSTEM OF AL-WALAYAH AND AL-BARAAH..........................162
THE RULES OF AL-WALAYAH...............................................................164
THE RULES OF AL-BARRAH:..................................................................170
RESERVATION (AL-WUQUF)..................................................................172
THE ORIGINS OF THE SYSTEM OF AL-WALAYAH AND AL-
BARAAH......................................................................................................174
CHAPTER VI................................................................................................190
THE STAGES OF THE IBADHI COMMUNITY.......................................190
Manifestations (zuhur):.................................................................................191
The stage of defence (difa):...........................................................................191
Shira, the sacrifice of one’s life:...................................................................192
The stage of Secrecy (kitman):.....................................................................194
RECAPITULATION.....................................................................................200
BIBLIOGRAPHY..........................................................................................204
LIST OF MANUSCRIPTS:..........................................................................204
LIST OF ARTICLES..................................................................................209
PUBLISHED WORKS.................................................................................211
7
PREFACE
Al-Ibadhiya, or al-Ibadhiyah, is one of the earliest Islamic sects, the foundation
of which goes back to the first half of the first century H. The school took its
name from Abdullah b. Ibadh, one of its early theologians.
The name Ibadhiyah applies to a Muslim group, which was considered by most
writers as a moderate branch of the Kharijite movement. The adherents of this
school still form a number of independent communities holding a fast to its
teachings. The largest of this lives today in Oman and Muscat in Southeast
Arabia. There are other minorities in Zanzibar of the East Coast of Africa, in
Jabal Nafusah and Zuwarah in Libya, in Jerba Island in Tunisia and in Wad
Mzab in Algeria.
Very little is known about the Ibadhiyah, their doctrines, origins and
development. Modern European scholars have made useful contributions in the
field of Ibadhi studies, but their studies were directed mainly to the history of
the Ibadhi communities or some aspects of their present social and religious life.
With the exception of a few articles on Ibadhi theology, Ibadhi teachings in
general have not been dealt with seriously. The studies conducted by European
scholars on Ibadhism were based mainly on historical sources. The vast Ibadhi
writings on jurisprudence and theology were not properly utilized. This was no
doubt due to the difficulty of access to such sources.
The earlier paper on Ibadhi bibliography was presented by Motylinski in his
article on "Bibliographe du Mzab"* in which he listed the Ibadhi works given
by al-Barradi, adding his own notes and findings. However he does not give
specific locations of the Mss. he mentions, nor does he give a satisfactory
description of them with the exception of the historical works. The value of
this study lies in the fact that it was the preliminary step, which facilitated
subsequent researches. The latest and most useful list of Ibadhi work in Mzab
was made by the late Professor J. Schacht in his article "Bibliotheque et
manuscript abadites" in which he listed the extant Ibadhi Mss. in the private
collections of Mzab, arranged according to their subjects, giving the names of
the collections and the numbers of the Mss. The other lists of Ibadhi collections
of Mss. were complied by other modern scholars: A list of the Ibadhi Mss. in
Krakow in Poland made by Wladyslaw Kubiak, in his article "al-Makhtutat
al'arabiyah fi Polunia" in Majallat Ma;had al-Makhtutat al-arabiyah; a list of
the Ibadhi Mss. in the Oriental Institute of Naples, made by Rubinacci, and
also the description of the Ibadhi Mss. in Dar al-Kutub or Cairo, made by the
late Fu'ad al-Saiyid in the Catalogue of Dar al-Kutub.
During the course of this study I made two tours to the Ibadhi communities in
8
North Africa in search of Mss. and material for my work. The first tour was
during June - September 1968, and the second was during November -
December 1969. Being myself an Ibadhi, it was easier for me to obtain access
to private libraries and collections of Mss. than for non-Ibadhis. To my
surprise, most of the important Maghribi works, including those which were
thought to be lost, were still extant and in good condition. Moreover, there is
still great hope for future discovery in this field. A description of some of the
new Mss. discovered on my first tour has been published in the Journal of
Semitic Studies. It is hoped that a complete list with a full description of all the
Mss. I have examined will be made in the near future.
The region, which has not yet been fully explored and is no doubt a place where
even more valuable Ibadhi Mss. are likely to be found, is Oman, which requires
special attention from students of Ibadhi matters. I myself was unable to visit
Oman, but was provided by some early works on jurisprudence and standard
Sirahs of early Ibadhi authorities which were or great help in the study on the
origins of the Ibadhi school and its relations to the early opposition movements
in Islam.
Oman, being a major center of the Ibadhis and the Ibadhi imamate, received
close attention from European scholars, an account of which has already been
given by J. Wilkinson in his D. Phil. thesis on The Arab Settlement in Oman,
Oxford, 1969, and which I therefore do not propose to treat here. However,
what seems still to be needed as far as Oman is concerned, though it would not
be easy to achieve, is the discovery of more material which would undoubtedly
help in forming a clear picture of the Ibadhi school and its development in all
Ibadhi areas. For, most of the early Ibadhi authorities moved from Basra to
Oman, where strong Imamate was founded and which provided a more
congenial atmosphere for those scholars to develop their views and contribute
to other Ibadhi countries, but the original material of the Ibadhi doctrine in its
early period may well be preserved in Oman, and the likelihood of making
important findings there is quite feasible.
European scholars also paid close attention to the Ibadhis of North Africa.
Masqueray, who translated the Sirah of Abu Zakariya al-Warijlani into French,
started their studies. His work attracted the attention of other scholars who
contributed to Ibadhi studies in different fields. In the field of history,
Motylinski, in his article on the Ibadhi books, presented full tables of contents
of the Ibadhi works on the biographies of the Ibadhi Sheikhs; the Sirah of Abu
Zakariya; the Tabaqat of al-Darjini; al-Jawahir of al-Barradi, and the Siyar of
al-Shamaakhi. He later edited and translated into French the history of Ibn al-
Saghir al-Maliki on the Rustamid Imams. Full reviews of these Ibadhi sources
appeared later. Lewicki made reviews of both Tabaqat of al-Darjini, and the
9
'Azzabah. There is the article of Lewicki on al-Halka and also the article of
Rubinacci, "Un antico documento di vita cenobitica musulmana" which deal
with the rules of the Halqah. There were the main works on Ibadhi studies
concerned with the Maghribi Ibadhis in the European languages. Few notes are
to be found where the subjects of the early sectarian movements of Islam were
studied, for all European scholars include Ibadhis among the Kharijites.
As for non-Ibadhi Muslim scholars, they always regarded Ibadhis as extreme
Kharijites and heretics, and did not pay any serious attention to studying
Ibadhi doctrine and forming a clearer image of the Ibadhi School. It was only
recently that the Ibadhi School was included among the Islamic schools
represented in the new Encyclopaedias of Islamic law appearing in Egypt and
Kuwait. This interesting event came about as a result of the continuous Ibadhi
activities directed towards gaining better understanding from the neighbouring
Muslims. These activities were started by Sulaiman Basha al-Baruni of Jabal
Nafusah, who was an active Muslim politician and played a major part in the
fighting against the Italian invaders of Libya in 1911. Interest of the Muslim in
the Ibadhi affairs was aroused by the part which al-Baruni played together with
the Ibadhis of Jabal Nafusah in the war against Italy, his firm loyalty to the
Ottoman Empire and his hard struggle for the Muslim cause. He stood for
better understanding between Muslims, and was one of the earliest voices to
invite Muslims to forget the differences caused by conflict of opinion among the
() المذاهبoriginal masters of their Schools.
and to return to the direct judgement of the Qur'an and the Sunnah. The
prestige which was established by al-Baruni in international Muslim circles
through his heroic struggle against Western colonial invasion brought
appreciation for the Ibadhi contribution to Islamic unity, which was the slogan
of most Muslim leaders at the time, and paved the way for the Ibadhi views to
be heard. In addition to Baruniyah Lithographic Press, established in Cairo
before the beginning of this century, Sulaiman al-Baruni established his own
printing press during the early part of this century, and issued his newspaper al-
Asad al-Islami, in which he propagated his views and tried to give a clearer
picture of the Ibadhis. He also published a few Ibadhi books by Omani and
Maghribi authors, including his own work on Ibadhi history, al-Azhar al-
riyadiyah. The late scholar Abu Ishaq Ibrahim Atfaiyish of Mzab afterwards
followed the activities started by al-Baruni in Egypt. He was exiled by the
French from Algeria and settled in Egypt, where he issued his journal, al-
Minhaj, and participated in editing and publishing the works of the modern
Ibadhi scholar Muhammad b. Yusuf Atfaiyish, and some works of the Omani
scholar al-Salimi. He was, during his long stay in Egypt, an unofficial
representative of the Ibadhi school, defending and propagating Ibadhi views,
and he was always ready for consultation on Ibadhi studies. There can be no
11
doubt that his contribution towards presenting a clearer view of the Ibadhi
School was of great importance. This is much in evidence in his magazine, al-
Minhaj; in his notes on the works he edited and in his notes on the parts of E.I.
translated into Arabic, in which he tried to correct euphonious views on the
Ibadhiyah.
Similar activities took place in Tunisia and Algeria through the leaders of Hizb
al-Islah of Mzab who joined in the activities of al-Hizb al-Dusturi of 'Abd al-
Aziz al-Th'alibi. Among the leading Ibadhi personalities who played an
important part in Tunisia were the late Muhammad al-Thamini, originally
from Mzab, who established a Bookshop in Tunis, and participated in
publishing and circulating Ibadhi literature, and the late Sheikh Sulaiman al-
Jadawi of Jerba, who was the editor of the well-known paper, Murshid
al-'Ummah. The leading figures of the parallel activities in Algeria were Abu
al-Yaqzan Ibrahim, who issued about eight different newspaper during the
French rule, and Sheikh Baiyud Ibrahim B. 'Umar who is responsible for the
modern reformist movement in Mzab, and it schools and institutions. Both
men were active members of Jam'iyat al-'Ulama and personal friends of the
leading Sunni scholars of the Jam'iyah. They were all sincere in their aim of
seeking better understanding with the neighbouring Sunnis. This movement,
which was largely inspired by al-Baruni and his approach, relaxed the bitter
attitude of opposition to the Ibadhis in their different communities, and
provided a better atmosphere for the Ibadhis to present their views in a
moderate way. The latest contribution in this field has been made by 'Ali
Mua'ammar of Jabal Nafusah, Libya, who recently published a number of
volumes under the title, al-Ibadhiya fi mawkib al-tarikh, planning to present a
general study of the Ibadhis in their various countries. He also published other
works dealing with legal and religious matters. The other scholar is
Muhammad 'Ali Dabbuz of al-Qararah, Mzab, who undertook to rewrite the
history of the Maghrib from the Ibadhi point of view. Up till now he has
published seven volumes he dealt with the early history of the Maghrib. The
other volumes were devoted to study of modern Algeria, Thawrat al-Jazair wa
nahdatuha al-mubarakah. Both authors were students of Sheikh Baiyud and
were largely influenced by his reformist views. Their works argue persuasively
and vigorously with Muslims that they should return to the Qur'an and the
Sunnah, and leave aside the causes of division resulting from following opinions
of later scholars affected by political differences. This was the Ibadhi
contribution to the modern Islamic attempt to restore the original Islam of the
Book and the Sunnah. This was the Ibadhi contribution to the modern Islamic
attempt to restore the original Islam of the Book and the Sunnah. This trend
which was propagated by Muhammad 'Abduh and his student Rashid Rida,
and followed up by the activities of their students, brought to Ibadhis new hope
12
for better understanding. First it seemed to them that at last their Muslim
adversaries had started to realise what they (Ibadhis) had stood for from the
beginning. The Ibadhis took part in this movement throughout the political
struggle for national independence in their different countries, and stood side
by side with their Sunni neighbours against the invading powers. They tried
always to present their views and doctrines, to clear away the old
misunderstanding and release themselves from the traditional isolation in which
they always lived with regard to their Muslim neighbours. The Ibadhi
contribution to the Ibadhi studies branched into two directions:
a) Providing their own literature by edition and publishing old Ibadhi
works, and adding new contributions, in new writings to meet with the
present requirements.
b) Presenting a clearer picture of their views and history in order to gain
better understanding from non-Ibadhi Muslims.
As for non-Ibadhi Muslims, there is no serious attempt yet on their side to
study Ibadhism deeply through its own sources. However, signs of such
attention to Ibadhi studies have started to appear in modern universities
through contemporary scholars who were no doubt directed towards Ibadhi
studies through the interest and contribution of the European scholars. Cairo
University, where an Ibadhi student Muhammad Hanbulah under the
supervision of Muhammad Sallam Madhkur is undertaking a comparative study
of the laws of ownership in Ibadhi law and modern canon law in Libya, is
taking the lead in this direction. There is no doubt that the originality of the
subject and the possibilities it offers for new lines of research will encourage
more studies in the future.
The object of the present study is to provide a clearer picture of the Ibadhi
School based on original but newly discovered Ibadhi material. Although in
area this study is concerned with Ibadhism in North Africa, it was essential to
study the origins of the Ibadhi movement and its early founders in Basrah, its
relation to the Kharijite movement, its connection with the early events of
Islamic history and political development, the effect these (two latter) had on
the Ibadhi school with regard to its theological and juridical views, then its
expansion into North Africa. It is also aimed to present a clear view of Ibadhi
jurisprudence and theology; the points of agreement and disagreement with the
contemporary opposition movements and schools of law, and some
distinguishing features of the Ibadhi doctrine, namely the system of 'Walaya'
and 'Bara’ah', and the stages of the Ibadhi community. Three Ibadhi texts were
edited as part of this thesis to provide samples of Ibadhi literature covering the
fields of theology, jurisprudence, and the subject of Walaya and Bara’ah which
falls into both fields1.
13
The present study is so far the first to be based on a large newly discovered
foundation of original material of early Ibadhi authorities and a thorough
examination of most extant Ibadhi works in different fields of study. It is
hoped that it will open a new horizon in the field of Islamic studies and
encourage further investigation in the light of the new materials used here and
the opinions reached. However, it is only the first step in the study of
Ibadhism, and no doubt a great deal remains to be done; though the writer
trusts the way may have been paved by the results achieved in the research.
_________________
(1) These texts are to be publishied separately.
CHAPTER I
"ABDULLAH B. IBADH"
The Ibadhi school took its name from 'Abdullah b, Ibadh al-Murri al-Tamimi.
The school was named after his father because he was better known than the
son, as is the case in Arabic genealogy1. Al-Malati alone reported that the sect
was named after its founder who is, according to him, Ibadh b. 'Amr2. This
information cannot be taken into account, for al-Malati reported information
about the Kharijites in his book contrary to all sound authorities who dealt
with the subject.3
Very little is known about 'Abdullah b. Ibadh in both Ibadhi and non-Ibadhi
sources. He is of Banu Sarim b. al-Harith b. Muqa'is of Banu Tamim, one of
the main tribes of Mudar.4 Nothing is known about his early life. The modern
Ibadhi scholar Muhammad b. Yusuf Atfaiyish suggests that Ibn Ibadh moved
from Najd, the homeland of his tribe, to Basrah5. He also reported that certain
narrations state that he was a 'Sahabi for a short time6. However, Ibadhi
chroniclers included Ibn Ibadh, among the class of al-Tabi'un who lived during
the second half of the first century H7. It is not known whether he participated
in the civil wars which occurred among Muslims before the 'Umayyad rule. But
it appears that he was not satisfied by the rule of Mu'awiyah and criticised is
violation of the Qur'an and the Sunnah8. The first definite information about
14
his public activities was about his part in the defense of Mecca against the
'Umayyad leader, Hussein b. Numair al-Sakuni, the successor of Muslim b.
Uqbah, (63 H/582 A.D.)9. He also was among the leaders of the Muhakkimah
party who tried to win 'Abdullah b. al-Zubair to their side and offered him
their full support if he agreed to their views and dissociated himself from
'Uthman Jalhah, and his own father al-Zubair b. al-Awwam, but 'Abdullah b.
al-Zubair refused to agree to their views and they left him, some of them
returning to Basrah among whom was 'Abdullah bin Ibadh10. It appears that
the attitude of Ibn al-Zubair made them give up all hope of an outstanding
leadership. A number of leading personalities emerged and sought the
leadership of the movement through military action. First of these was Abu
Rashid Nafii' b. al-Azraq who took an extreme line in his revolt and withdrew
with his followers from the Muslim community on the basis that their land was
a land of war and they were all polytheists.11 At this stage 'Abdullah b. Ibadh
appeared as a leading figure who opposed the attitude of Nafii' and other
Khariji leaders and refuted them openly12. Non-Ibadh sources suggest that
this was how the Ibadhi school started, and accredited its foundation to
'Abdullah b. Ibadh who was according to most of those sources, the head, (ra's),
of the Ibadhi school.13
The information given in Ibadhi sources shows that 'Abdullah b. Ibadh played a
secondary part in the foundation and the leadership of the Ibadhi movement
compared with its first Imam and founder Jabir b. Zaid. It is reported that Ibn
Ibadh in all his activities was acting according to orders from Jabir b. Zaid14.
It is also stated that Ibn Ibadh was the most prominent theologian of the time
of Jabir b. Zaid, and that he was the one who refuted openly the view of
opponent groups of Qadarites Mu'tazilites, Muji'ites, Shi'tes, and extreme
Kharijites15. It is believed that Ibn Ibadh propagated openly the views of his
school, despite the fact that the activities of the Ibadhi School were carried out
in secrecy at that time, because he enjoyed the protection of his tribe. Another
reason was that the Ibadhi movement after the revolt of Nafii' b. al-'Azraq was
obliged to make its views about the Azraqites known to the public to keep the
support of ordinary Muslims, and to the authorities to avoid their persecution.
Jabir b. Zaid who was the Imam of the Ibadhi movement at that time directed
the activities of Ibn Ibadh. The school took the name of Ibn Ibadh, because he
used to openly to propagate its views and was known to non-Ibadhi groups for
refuting their views as also because of his clear and firm attitude against the
extreme Kharijites. Another reason which made the Ibadhi school bear his
name could be his political activities and his contacts with the 'Umayyad Caliph
'Abd al-Malik b. Marwan with whom he exchanged correspondence16. The
Ibadhis did not use at first the name Ibadhis, instead they used the terms 'the
Muslims’ al-Muslimun, and 'community of the Muslims', Jama'at al-Muslimin,
15
and 'the people of the mission', 'Ahl el-da'wah. The name Ibadhis is not
mentioned in early Ibadhi works such as the Mudawanah of Abu Ghanim or
any other early works. Later, however, they recognised and accepted this name.
It first appears in Maghribi Ibadhi works in the treatise of 'Amrus b. Fath 200
H.17
It seems that 'Abdullah b. Ibadh became a public figure because of his views
and activities and certain groups other than the Ibadhis such as al-'Umariyah
18 claimed his leadership. It is also reported that al-Harithiyah, the followers
of al-Harith b. Mazyad al-Ibadhi claim that they recognised none but the
Imamate of 'Abdullah b. Ibadh after the death of Abu Bilal Mirdas.19
It is not clear whether 'Abdullah b. Ibadh took any active part in the military
revolts which took place during his lifetime, al-Kadmi included him in one list
together with Abu Bilal and 'Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi, and described them
as al-Khawarij20. According to al-Qazwini, Ibn Ibadh revolted during the
time of Marwan b. Muhammad b. 'Atiyah in Tabalah21. Shahrastani also
stated that Ibn Ibadh was with 'Abdullah b. Yahya in his revolt, and in all his
activities.22 Both Omani authors, al-Qalhati, and Ahmad b. Abdullah al-
Ruqaishi mentioned that Ibn Ibadh lived up to the time of 'Abd al-Malik b.
Marwan to whom he wrote the famous letters23. But, like other Ibadhi
authorities, they did not mentioned whether he lived afterwards or took part in
the revolt of Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi. It is unlikely that Ibn Ibadh took
part in those wars without being mentioned by Ibadhi authors or other
historians who reported those wars such as al-Tabari, al-Isfahani and others.24
The list of early Ibadhi authorities given by al-Qalhati showed Abdullah b.
Ibadh and 'Urwah b. Hadir as students of Jabir b. Zaid, 'Abdullah b. Wahb al-
Rasibi, and Zaid b. Sawhan and showed Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah,
Farwah b. Nawfal, and Wida b. Hawtharah as students of 'Abdullah b. Ibadh
and his contemporaries, while 'Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi and al-Mukhtar b.
'Awf were listed among the students of Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim.25 It seems that
either Ibn Ibadh was dead when Jabir died and was succeeded by Abu
'Ubaidah, or else he was not important enough to take over the leadership of
the movement. The first view seems to be more convincing, and can be
supported by the information given by al-Baghdadi that al-Harith al-Ibadhi
headed his group as successor of 'Abdullah b. Ibadh. Accordingly, Ibn Ibadh
must have been dead when al-Harith started propagating his views on qadar in
which he opposed the Ibadhi authorities. It is hard to believe that Ibn Ibadh
was till alive, for if he was he would have refuted the views of al-Harith. Ibadhi
authorities reported that the burden of refuting al-Harith was borne by Abu
'Ubaidah Muslim.26 All these facts support the views of Lewicki who pointed
out that the information reported by both al-Shahrastani and al-Qazwini
16
concerning Ibn Ibadh's part in revolts against Marwan b. Muhammad was not
very convincing27. However, the information given about Ibn Ibadh is very
limited and confusing. Among the early authors who noticed this fact was Ibn
Hazm who states that the most learned men of the Ibadhis of al-'Andalus knew
nothing of 'Abdullah b. Ibadh28. The reason, as suggested by Ibn Hazm, was
that Ibn Ibadh renounced his views and joined the Tha'alibah group of the
Kharijites29. Al-Dhahabi also reported that Ibn Ibadh recanted his heresies
(i.e. Ibadhism)!30 Ibadhi authorities did not confirm such information.
Another example of the confused and unreliable information is reported by Ibn
Hawqal who said that both 'Abdullah b. Ibadh and 'Abdullah b. Wahb al-
Rasibi came to Jabal Nafusah and died there31.
It may be necessary here to mention the fact that the view held by Lewicki,
namely that the Ibadhi state of secrecy was started by Ibn Ibadh,32 is contrary
to the information reported in Ibadhi works. Ibadhi authorities stated clearly
that this state of secrecy (kitman) was introduced under the leadership or the
Imamate of Jabir b. Zaid who conducted the activities of the movement and its
members.33 They also reported that the revolts which took place during his
life, whether that of Abu Bilal or others, were planned by Jabir b. Zaid,34 who
was the man responsible for the foundation and the development of the Ibadhi
school.
and preserved.44
All those works by early Ibadhi authorities contain the Ibadhi view of the early
changes which took place in the Muslim community and which started with
opposition to the policies of the third Caliph 'Uthman b. 'Affan, and the Ibadhi
account of, and attitude towards, the different parties which came into
existence in early Islamic history. The following account of the Ibadhi view of
the early political development of the Muslim community, and their view of the
Kharijites is based on the above-mentioned materials.
The Ibadhis considered their movement a continuation of the opposition which
overthrew 'Uthman b. Affan, the third Caliph and caused his death. They
regarded that opposition as being a purely Islamic rejection of the innovations
introduced by 'Uthman and his 'Umayyad court. Those innovations (ahdath),
were pointed out in K. Sifat Ahdath 'Uthman, the letter of 'Abdullah b. Ibadh
and the Sirah of Salim b. Dhakwan. There is no mention in Ibadhi sources of
the rule of 'Abdullah b. Saba' in this first revolt against 'Uthman, a fact which
indicates that Ibadhis understood that the revolt was an Islamic duty carried
out by the Companions of the Prophet who wanted to keep to the Sunnah of
the Prophet and the example of his two successors, and not a result of any
outside or mysterious influence. They (the Ibadhis) approved of the Caliphate
of 'Ali b. Abi Talib and regarded Talhah, al-Zubair, A'ishah and their party as
the rebellious party (al-fi'atu al-baghiyah).46 It is reported that both Jabir b.
Zaid and Abu Bilal Mirdas discussed with 'A'ishah her attitude at the battle of
the Camel and blamed her for her opposition to 'Ali who was the legal Caliph
at that time, and she once more repented.47 They also approved of 'Ali in his
wars against Mu'awiyah and regarded both Mu'awiyah and 'Amr b. al-'As and
their party as the rebellious party which should be fought until they accepted
the commands of God.48 But they disapproved of Ali's acceptance of
arbitration, regarding those who rejected arbitration as the true Muslims, and
their leader 'Abdullah b. Wahb al-Rasibi the fifth legal Caliph.49 They
renounced 'Ali b. Abi Talib for killing the people of al-Nahr and argued that he
had no right whatsoever to fight them. Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah
commented on the statement made by 'Ali regarding the slogan of the people
of al-Nahr (la hukm illa lillah), that it was a word of truth meant for falsehood.
Abu 'Ubaidah said that, since 'Ali know that their slogan expressed the truth,
who informed him that false hood was their intention?50
It is reported on the authority of Jabir b. Zaid that when 'Ali b. Abi Talib
noticed that his followers were disturbed at the slaughter of pious Muslims in
the battle of al-Nahrawan, and regretted what they had done, he asked them
on the next day of the battle to search for a devil among the dead people of al-
Nahr, so they brought him a man who was bitten in the chest by a camel, and
19
'Ali told them that this was the devil. When his son al-Hasan reminded him
that the man was Nafii', the client of the Companion himself and participated
in jihad, 'Ali silenced him and told him that war is deceptive, (al-harbu
khud'ah)!51. This information shows that early Ibadhi authorities believed that
'Ali b. Abi Talib was not in the right in fighting against the people of al-Nahr,
and that his attitude was based on worldly desires and not on religious grounds
as was the case with the people of al-Nahr52.
Thus was the view of the Ibadhis regarding the early political changes, as they
understood them. To them, the Muhakkimah were the only party struggling
to resume the just Islamic Imamate as it was during the time of Abu Bakr,
'Umar, the first six years of 'Uthman's rule and the early years of 'Ali before he
accepted the arbitration. The military struggle of this party ended in the
massacre of the people of al-Nahr by 'Ali b. Abi Talib and his forces (37 H/658
A.D.), and the people of al-Nakhilah by the joint forces of both Mu'awiyah and
al-Hasan b. 'Ali.53
After this stage 'Umayyad rule became established and made its aim to prevent
any sort of opposition. So the sympathisers of the Muhakkimah party, or 'al-
Muslimun', or 'Jama'at al-Muslimin' as they were called in the early Ibadhi
literature, were obliged to hide their faith and to carry out their activities in
secret54. Among the survivors of the battle of al-Nahrawan were 'Urwah b.
'Udayyah and his brother Abu Bilal Mirdas.55 They continued their activities
in Basrah, being known for their devotion to their religious duties, and were
among the leading men of 'Jama'at al-Muslimin' in Basrah. It appears that
Abu Bilal was a leading man of Basrah, for he was one of three men who
commented on the first sermon of Ziyad b. Abih in the mosque of Basrah when
the latter was appointed governor of Basrah, Khurasan and Sijistan by
Mu'awiyah.56 It is also reported that Abu Bilal and Jabir b. Zaid were in a
close touch during this period and he used to spend a considerable time with
Jabir b. Zaid. It is reported that they together visited 'A'ishah and reproached
her for her stand at the battle of the Camel.57 during this period Jabir's
leadership of the Muhakkimah party was established. He was a learned pious
man from al-Azd, the same tribe as 'Abdullah b. Wahb al-Rasibi, the last
elected leader of the party. On the whole, the activities of Jabir were
intellectual, so that he was able to propagate and preserve the teaching of Islam
in a way which did not arouse the suspicion of the 'Umayyad authorities. His
position as an outstanding mufti in Basrah provided him with useful cover and
enabled him to establish widespread contacts with leading persons in different
parts of the Islamic countries.58
The policy of Jabir was to use all means to ensure the security of his movement
and safety for his followers. He even went to the extent of ordering the
20
book of Allah, but it will not pass beyond their throats, they will pass through
religion ( ( يمرقون مين الديينas an arrow passes through a hunted animal....
Etc."76
As for the terms Khawarij and Khuruj, the Ibadhis used them meaning 'to
come out' for jihad.77 Later, some Ibadhi authors confined this name to the
extreme groups of the Kharijites who acted contrary to the principles of the
Muhakkimah.78 But most of the early Ibadhi authorities and also some of the
later 'Omani authors used the term Khuruj and Khawarij for the Ibadhis as
well, and distinguished the extreme Kharijites by the term, Khawarij al-jawr,79
(Unjust Kharijites). They also used shira' and shurat to replace the terms,
Khuruj and Khawarij, although the terms shira' and shurat had their own
special meaning in Ibadhi doctrine.80 For the Muhakkimah, the people of al-
Nahr, al-Nakhilah, and Abu Bilal and his followers the terms al-Muslimun,
Jama'at al-Muslimin, were usually used. These two names together with the
title, ('Ahl al-Da'wah), were employed by the Ibadhis to designate their school.
The following are the points upon which the Ibadhis disagreed with the
Kharijites:
1- The question of Khuruj:
The doctrine which was introduced by Nafii' b. al-Azraq was that Khuruj or
hijrah, to their camp is obligatory. He regarded the land of their Muslim
opponents (al-mukhalifun) as the land of war (dar al-harb), and regarded those
who took no action (al-qa'adah) as idolaters on the basis of the Qur'anic verse,"
If you obey them you are idolaters."81 This doctrine was contrary to the
doctrine held by the Muhakkimah that their Muslim opponents were simply
'infidels-ingrate,"82 (kuffar), not polytheists, that their fellow Muslims could
live among their opponents, and allowed qu'ud, so that Khuruj or hijrah is not
obligatory. In fact, the early Muhakkimah were very clear about the question
of qu'ud as lawful for their fellow Muslims to the extent that they elected
'Abdullah b. Wahb al-Rasibi Imam, and preferred him to Ma'dan al-'Iyadi
because he said.83
Ibadhis kept to the doctrine of the early Muhakkimah and rejected the attitude
of Nafii' and maintained that both parties, i.e. those who come out for jihad
and those who took no action, al-qa'adah, are Muslims; those who take no
action support those who come for jihad and hold belief in association with
them, and the latter pardon the weakness of those who take no action.84 This
doctrine was expressed later in the following statement, (La Hijra baad al-Fath),
which is in fact a part of Tradition of the Prophet,85 and was used almost in all
Ibadhi creeds to express their view of the question of hijrah, or Khuruj.86
2- The second point is their attitude regarding their Muslim opponents, al-
23
mukhalifun. The Azraqites held that their Muslim opponents were idolaters;
accordingly, they regarded their land as a land of war, holding it lawful to kill
their women and children or to take them captive, and to despoil them of their
property. On the other hand they prohibited their followers from either
inheriting from them or marrying their women fold. They also considered it
lawful to keep what their Muslim opponents entrusted them with, and deny
them their right to it.88
Ibadhis regarded all those doctrines about their relation with their Muslim
opponents, as errors (dalalat) because they opposed the views of the Muslims
and acted contrary to their Sirah. Both Ibadi leaders, Jabir bin Zaid and
Abdullah bin Ibadi refuted these views of the Azraqites and renounced them.89
They took the same attitude towards the other Khariji groups such as Sufriyah,
Najdat and others, though the latter differed from the Azraqites on some
points.90
Ibadhis regarded the new doctrines, introduced by Nafii and the other
Kharijites, as serious heresies, (bida'a), dissociated themselves from their
movements, refuted their views, and even fought wars against them.91 Among
the early Ibadhi documents, which discussed this problem of the extreme
Kharijites and their views, is the Sirah of Salim b. Dhakwan. It may be of some
value to quote here his views of the case, for it represents the contemporary
view of an outstanding Ibadhi scholar, and reflects the general Ibadhi attitude
towards the Kharijites.
Salim b. Dhakwan started his Sirah with a detailed account of the course of the
religion of Islam from the beginning of its revelation up to the time when Ali b.
Abi Talib, the fourth Caliph, accepted arbitration after which the Muhakkimah
renounced him and went about establishing the rule of God on Earth in their
own way, sacrificing their lived for their caused. Ibn Dhakwan gave the
following account of the Muhakkimah and their successors, and described their
policy, Sirah, as follows:
"The Muslim Kharijites revolted repeatedly, assenting to the judgement of God alone,
following the example of their Muslim predecessors. They did not kill the children of
their Muslim opponents, or permit their women to be taken captive, or kill those who
did not fight them. They did not divide the property of their Muslim opponents, or take
it for spoil, or prohibit inheritance from them. They delivered the trust to them and to
others. They insured the safety of those of their people who abstained and isolated
themselves, without doubting their effort in taking an intermediate position between
right and evil, for "What is there, after the truth, but error."92 They fulfilled their
duties to their relatives and recognised the right of the neighbour, the friend,
the orphan, the travelling stranger, and the right of their slaves. Those of them
who came out in jihad loved those who stayed behind, and those who came out
24
have the priority, which God has granted them.93 They loved each other with
the love of God, and helped each other to seek the pleasure of God and the
reward of the day after. Whenever a group of them came out they left, for
those of their supporters who remained behind, the established proof against
their enemy with those of understanding and knowledge of the commands of
God."94
Then, Ibn Dhakwan went on to explain the attitude of the Azraqites as follows:
"...Then, after them revolted Nafii b. al-'Azraq and his followers; they behaved
for an indefinite time which God determined, like those who revolted before
them. Then afterwards, hatred made them regard their people as identical with
the idolaters, and they prohibited inheritance from them, and forbade marriage
with them. Their predecessors, with whom they 'associated' themselves and in
alliance with whom they believed, inherited from their relatives and married
their women, but they (the Azariqah) today oppose their predecessors, and
dissociate themselves from them. If their predecessors were wrong in what they
did, they (the Azariqah) are wrong also in taking them as friends.
They also permitted taking their Muslim opponents captive, in enslaving their
women, dividing their property as spoil, and killing them and their children
though their ancestors did not permit any such thing."
".... They refused to give protection to those of their people who sought it from them, till
they heard the words of God, although they regarded them as identical with the
idolaters despite what God said to His Apostle, 'And if any of the idolaters seeks of the
protection, grant him protection till he hears the words of God, then do thou convey him
to his place of security...95"
They showed ingratitude to their kinsmen despite the fact that the Prophet
showed mercy to a man from Aslam ... They renounced every Bedouin
(A'rabiy) including him who believed in 'association' with them and believed in
their virtue and he (the 'A'rabi) asked God grant him what He has granted
them in the way of jihad against His enemies, although God said, "And some of
the Bedouins believe in God and the last day, and take what they expend for
offerings bringing them near to God, and the prayers of the Messenger. Surely
they are an offering for them, and God will admit them in His mercy: God is
all forgiving, All compassionate."96 They regarded their fellows who stayed
behind at home as infidels permitting their blood to be shed and their property
to be seized. They forbade taking them as 'awliya' or asking forgiveness for
them. At the same time they claimed 'Walaya' with those who used to love
and ask forgiveness for their fellow-Muslims who stayed at home and forbade
their blood to be shed, or their property to be seized, and held it lawful to
inherit from them and ask forgiveness for them."97
25
the example of the early Muslims and old Muhakkimah.102 Besides refuting
the views of the extreme Kharijites, early Ibadhi Imams made their policy quite
clear on those issues. When 'Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi consulted the Ibadhi
leaders of Basrah about revolting, Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah, the
second Imam of the Ibadhi community in Basrah and his colleagues wrote to
him, "When you come out (for jihad) do not exceed the proper bounds or be
perfidious; follow the example of your good predecessors and adopt their way,
for you have learnt that what has driven them to fight the rulers was
disapproval of their deeds."103
The outlines of the Ibadhis' attitude on their relations with the rest of the
Muslim community were expressed by 'Abdullah b. Ibadh in his well-known
statement, "We do not regard our Muslim opponents (mukhalifun) as idolaters,
for they believe in the unity of God, the Book, and the Messenger. But they
are 'infidels-ingrate' (kuffar al-ni'am). We hold it lawful to inherit from them,
marry from them, and live among them. The faith of Islam unites them (with
us)."104 This statement was confirmed and repeated by the contemporary and
subsequent Ibadhi authorities, such as Salim b. Dhakwan, 'Abdullah b. Yahya
al-Kindi, and Abu Hamzah al-Mukhtar b. 'Awf.
'Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi, the first Ibadhi Imam of Hadramawt and Yemen,
wrote in his letter of commission to his governor, 'Abd al-Rahman b.
Muhammad,"We do not block people's way and murder them on sight without
inviting them first to realise the truth. But we invite them to the truth. He
who accepts it enjoys all the rights that the Muslims (i.e. Ibadhis) enjoy, and is
subject to all their obligations. He who denies the truth and fights us we fight
him and ask God to give us support against him"105
Ibadhis repeatedly expressed this attitude of inviting people and giving them a
chance to understand the view of the Ibadhis, and waiting for them to decide
their attitude first. They always made it clear that they would fight their
opponents only when the latter attacked them first. Practical examples of this
Ibadhi attitude appear continuously throughout their history, whereas the
policy of murdering opponents without previous warning known as 'isti'rad,
was the distinguishing mark of the Azraqis all times. It was also one of the
main issues which made the Ibadhis oppose the Azraqis and other extreme
Kharijites, as well as other extremist attitudes resulting from their regarding
their Muslim opponents as idolaters. The attitude of the Ibadhis on those issues
was expressed in different forms by 'Abdullah b. Yahya, Abu Hamzah and
Salim b. Dhakwan. 'Abdullah b. Yahya wrote, ".... This is our policy (Sirah).
We do not punish the innocent for the guilty, the good for the evil, the woman
for the man, or the young for the old. We do not slay people on sight without
calling them to the truth first, and making it clear to them."106
27
He also wrote in the same letter, "...he who fights us, we fight him back, and
inspect his property in order to return to its owners those of people's rights of
which he had taken possession, and hand back to him what belongs to him
through which he caused no injustice to anyone, and we deliver it to his
descendants and heirs. No booty or captives should be taken from the people
of the Qiblah (i.e. Muslims), for they are not like polytheists whose property is
to be despoiled and their women and children taken captive. But the people of
the Qiblah are two parties of which one summons to what is right, holding fast
to it, and the other summons to injustice and persists in it."107
Abu Hamzah al-Mukhtar b. 'Awf, one of the prominent Ibadhis of Basrah, and
the most important leader in the wars of 'Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi, said,
"We give you (i.e. non-Ibadhi Muslims) the choice of three attitudes of which
you may take of yourselves whichever you prefer. May God bless him who
chooses for himself. It may be either that of him who assumes the same views
as we do and believes in what we propagate. His proof directs him to struggle
with us by himself. He will therefore receive the same reward as one of the
mujahids among us, and will receive the same share in the booty as one of our
best men. Or it may be that of him who acknowledges this affairs (i.e.
Ibadhism) and stays at home, does not take action, but summons unto it with
his heart and tongue. His position (in the eyes of God) may be better than
ours. Or that of the third who dislikes our views but refrain from opposing us
by hand and tongue. He is allowed to leave with safety granted for his family
and property. If we gain the victory we will not shed his blood; and if we were
killed he is saved the trouble of fighting us, and it may be that he will not live
in his infidelity except for a short time!"108
The earliest and most detailed account of Ibadhi policies on those issues
-policies which were violated by the extreme Kharijites - are given in the Sirah
of Salim b. Dhakhwan, of which the following are extracts:
"We recognise the right of parents, the right of relatives, the right of the poor,
the right of the travellers, the right of the friend, the right of the neighbour,
and the right of the slaves we own, and hold that it is our duty to fulfil their
rights, regardless of whether they were good or evil. To those who entrusted it
to us we deliver back the trust of all people, our people and others. When we
can we give them back all that is taken from them unjustly by our people. We
give protection to those of our people and others who sought it from us, and
grant safety for those who abstained during the fighting (between us and our
opponents; without being in any doubt about their error in taking an
intermediate position between right and evil for "There is nothing after the
truth but error" When we settle our account with our opponents, and are faced
with their case, we invite them to follow the Book of Allah and to gnosis of the
28
truth, and support of its adherents, and to dissociation from evil and enmity to
its followers. To him who recognises the truth and accedes to it and supports
us for it, we give our 'friendship' and support and prohibit shedding his blood.
He should struggle on our side. He among them who denies the right of Allah,
preferring blindness to guidance, and disagreement with Muslims to agreement
with them; we dissociate ourselves from him and fight him until he accepts the
precepts of Allah or dies believing in error, without regarding them as idolaters
or permitting capturing them, killing their children, taking their property for
spoils or prohibiting inheritance from them. We do not approve of
assassinating our people (i.e. non-Ibadhi Muslims) or killing them secretly even
if they were misguided (dullal), as long as we lived among them appearing to
accept their government, for God did not command it in His Book. Nor did
we know of any one of His friends and worshippers of the communities of the
part in the same circumstances, as we are, who held any such thing lawful, so
we follow their example. None of the Muslims who were at Mecca acted thus
against the polytheists, so how should we act thus against the people of the
Qiblah. God has ordered that covenants with those people suspected of
treachery be nullified. He said, "And if thou fearest treachery anyway at the
hands of a people, dissolve it (covenant) with them equally; surely God loves
not the treacherous." (Qur'an=viii.58) ... It is reprehensible that any one of the
Muslims, (i.e. Ibadhis) should accept an assignment to any post with kings or
rulers of our people, as long as they remain in error.... He who fights with them
arrives at one of two positions; either friendship with them and acceptance, or
supporting them and strengthening their rules."
"We hold it lawful to marry from among our people and to inherit from them.
This is not prohibited for us as long as they face our Qiblah, for the Muslims
used to marry from the hypocrites and inherit from them, though they knew
and saw more of their misdeeds than those seen of our people today. We
disapprove of accusing any one of those who face our Qiblah of that which we
have no knowledge, for great many of the Kharijites hold it lawful, in their
religion, to accuse of adultery one of their people, whom they know to be
innocent, out of their opposition to him. They might even never have spoken
to him, nor might any one of their supporters and friends have told them that
he had spoken to him, and they knew nothing of his actual conduct. God said,
"O Believers, be you securers of justice, witnesses for God. Let not detestation
for a people move you not to be equitable; be equitable - that is nearer to god
fearing. And fear God; surely God is aware of the things you do."110 (Qur'an
v: 8)
"We do not believe in killing our people on sight before inviting them to
reconsider the truth and adopt it, as long as they face our Qiblah, for God loves
'summoning', (al-Da'wah), and ordered His Apostle to do so. God has said, "O
29
Prophet, We have sent thee as a witness, and good tidings to bear and warning,
calling unto God by his leave, and as a light-giving lamp.” (Qur’an: xxxiii.46);
and said, call thou to the way of the Lord with wisdom and God admonition
and dispute with them in the better way. Surely the Lord knows very well
those who have gone astray from his way, and He knows very well those who
are guided.” (Qur'an:xvi. 125); and said Say: “This is my way. I call to God
with sure knowledge, I and whosoever follows after me. To God be glory! And
I am not among the idolaters.” (Qur’an: xii.108): and said, "Let there be one
community of you, calling to good, and bidding to honour, and forbidding
dishonour, those are the prosperers." (Qur'an: iiii.104). Then He said, "And
who speaks fairer than he, who calls unto God and does righteousness and says,
'Surely I am of the Muslims" (Qur'an: xii.33).
"We do not permit killing a child of the people of our Qiblah who has not
sinned, or committed any of that about which the people of the Qiblah
disputed among themselves; that is to say a sin of another older person who
understood God's command and knew of the affair about which people
disagreed, then chose to follow ignorance after knowledge, and blindness after
the clear proof. But the state of the descendants of those who face the Qiblah
today would be the same as if they were governed by a rightly-guided Imam,
ruling them with obedience to God - yet some of their parents had broken
away from him (i.e. the Imam) on a matter of uncertainty, so that they (the
descendants) did not acknowledge either (Walaya) with the Imam, or yet
(Bara’ah) from those of their parents who disagreed with the Imam. We do not
hold it lawful to marry a woman married to another man in accordance with
the Book of God and the Sunnah of His Apostle, unless her husband has
divorced her or died, and she has waited after that for the fixed period ('iddah)
for a divorced woman, or the period fixed for the widow whose husband has
died.
"We declare ourselves disassociated from anyone who openly commits an act of
disobedience to God, or an act for which He has threatened chastisement, and
from any perpetrator of which act He has commanded excommunication and
disassociation...111
"We do not take anyone for a 'waliy' except him who has openly acknowledge
before us what is due to God and acted in obedience to God, in 'Walaya' with
His 'awliya', and opposition to His enemies."
"We do not claim (hijrah) emigration from the land of our people like the
emigration of the Prophet and his Companions from the land of their people.
But those of us who come out - come out for jihad in the cause of God and
obedience to Him. If he returns to the land of his people we still regard him as
(waliy) if he acknowledges what is due to God with regard to himself and his
30
property.
"We take as 'awliya' both the woman and the slave in coming out for jihad
(Khuruj), if we know of their acceptance and the acknowledgement of the
truth, and that they hold belief in 'Walaya' with (followers of it) before they
(the woman and the slave) come out, (and if we know) that they do only come
out because of their love for Islam and inclination towards it apart from
anything else; for God said, "And the Believers, men and women, are friends
one of another; they bid for honour and forbid dishonour, they perform the
prayer, and pay the alms, and they obey God and His Messengers. Those upon
them God will have mercy; God is Almighty, All-wise." (Qur'an: ix.71)
"We do not hold that any group of Muslims should give the oath of allegiance
to their Imam except for jihad in the way of God, and obedience to him in
regard to what is right until they die or gain victory over their enemies. They
should appoint (to the Imamate) the best and the most learned person among
themselves.
"We take for 'Walaya' both those of us who come out and those who stay at
home. Those of us who stay acknowledge for those who come out the priority
(fadilah) that God granted them."112
These points, discussed above by Salim b. Dhakwan, presented not only the
Ibadhi views on the issues with which he dealt, but also presented strong
rejection of the all Khariji views on those issues.
It is clear from the above discussions and quotations from early Ibadhi literature
that there is hardly any point of agreement between Ibadhis and Kharijites. In
fact, Ibadhis disagreed with the Kharijites in all their doctrines, and opposed
them in theory and practice. The only point they have in common with the
Kharijites is their view of the Muhakkimah.
Having discussed the Ibadhi view of the Kharijites and their movement, it may
be of some value to mention briefly their view of the powers of the
contemporary 'Umayyads and the Shi'ites. In his sermon in Medina, Abu
Hamzah al-Mukhtar b. 'Awf expressed clearly the Ibadhi opinion of both the
'Umayyads and Shi'ites. After speaking about the deeds of the 'Umayyad
Caliphs one by one, starting with Mu'awiyah and ending with Yazid b. 'Abd al-
Malik, Abu Hamzah spoke about the rule of the 'Umayyad dynasty in general
in the following words:
"The sons of 'Umayya are a party of error, and their strength is the strength of
tyrants. They punish on suspicion, according to their whims and put men to
death in anger, and judge by intercession, and take the law out of context, and
distribute the public moneys to those not entitled to them for God has stated
31
clearly these entitled to it, and appointed them eight classes of people, for He
says, "The freewill offerings are for the poor and the needy, those who work to
collect them, those whose hearts are to be reconciled and slaves and debtors,
and those in the way of God, and travelers." (Qur'an: ix.60) They make
themselves the ninth and take it all! Such are those who rule by what God has
not sent down."113
About the Shi'ah party, Abu Hamzah said, "As for these factions (of 'Ali), they
are a faction which has repudiated the Book of God to promulgate lies about
Him. They have not left the people (of the community) because of their insight
into religion (as we have), or their deep knowledge of the Qur'an; they punish
crime in those who commit it, and commit it themselves when they get the
chance. They have determined upon tumult and know not the way out of it.
Crude in (their knowledge of) the Qur'an, following soothwayers; teaching
people to hope for the resurrection of the dead, and expecting the return (of
their Imams) to this world; entrusting their religion to a man who can not see
them! God smite them! How perverse they are!"114
In this sermon Abu Hamzah also spoke about his party, the Ibadhis, their cause
and their motives. Addressing his words to the people of Medina, Abu
Hamzah said, "We call you to the Book of god, and to the Sunnah of His
Prophet, and the equal sharing, and to justice for the subject peoples, and to
putting the fifths of the booty in the places God ordained for them." Then he
went on to describe his party, their aims and motives, and their reasons for
revolt, "As for us, we have not taken up arms lightly or frivolously, for play or
amusement, or for a change of government in which we hope to immerse
ourselves, or for the revenge that was taken from us; but we did it when we saw
the earth had grown wicked, and proofs of tyranny had appeared, and religious
propagandists increased, but men did as they pleased, and laws were neglected,
and the just were put to death, and speakers of truth treated violently and we
heard a herald calling us to Truth and the straight Path, so we answered the
summoner of God..... and by His grace we became brethren...."115
However, "It cannot be doubted," as Macdonald said, "that these men were the
true representatives of the old Islam. They claimed for themselves the heirship
to Abu Bakr and 'Umar, and their claim was just. Islam had been secularised;
worldly ambition, fractricidal strife, luxury, and sin had destroyed the old bond
of brotherhood. So they drew themselves apart and went their own way, a way
which their descendants still follow in Oman, in East Africa, and in
Algeria."116 It may be necessary to mention here that Professor Macdonald,
when writing these words, had no clear distinction between Ibadhis and
Kharijites, but it is clear that his description can be correct only if it was applied
to Ibadhis.
32
24. Tabari, Tarikh., VII, 348, 374-76, 399-402; Abu al-Faraj al-Isfahani, Aghani., editor
Farraj, XXIII, 111-158.
25. Qalhati, op, cit., 230 a-b.
26. Darjini, Tabaqat., 231-232 Shammakhi, Siyar., 85 For more clearly see below.
27. Lewicki, art. "Al-Ibadiyyah", E.I., 2nd edition 649.
28. Ibn Hazm, al-Fasl fi al-milal wa al-nihal., IV, 191.
29. Loc. cit.
30. Al-Dhahabi, Lisan., III, 248.
31. Ibn Hawqal, Surat al-ard., I, 95.
32. Lewicki, op. cit., 648.
33. Al-Jannawni, K. al-Wad., editor Abu Ishaq, (Cairo n.d. 22); Amr b. Jumai', Muqaddimat
al-tawhid., editor Abu Ishaq (Cairo, 1353 H.) 54.
34. Shammakhi, Siyar., 77: al-Qutb, Risalah shafiyah., 43; Jumaiyil b. Khamis, Qamus al-
shari'ah., Ms. Part 88, the page related to the subject.
35. Ibn al-Nadim, al-Fihrist., 258-329.
36. Barradi, al-Bahth al-sadiq wa al-'istikshaf fi sharh K. al-'Adl wa al-'insaf., Ms. I, 29.
37. Loc. cit.
38. Wisyani, Abu al-Rabi' Sulaiman b. ;Abd al-Salam, Siyar., Ms. 15.
39. Barradi, al-Jawahir. Lithogr. Cairo,1302.
40. Almost the same information from Abu Sufyan was reported in the Siyar of Shammakhi,
but it is not known whether he was using Darjini only or had access to the original work of
Abu Sufyan.
41. A complete copy of this Sirah is to be found in a Omani Ms. of mixed contents which is
believed to be part of Tarikh al-Bisyani or his al-Sirah al-Kabirah, (CI: Salimi, Lum'ah., 84). A
Xeroxed copy of this Omani Ms., which was given to me by Omani friends, is in the possession
of the Library of the Faculty of Oriental Studies, Cambridge.
42. There are complete copies of this Sirah in: Qalhati, al-Kashf wa al-Bayan., Ms 160a -
195b; The Omani Ms. mixed contents, 125-161; another Omani Ms. of mixed contents
together with the Sirah of Abu al-Mu'thir al-Salt b. Khamis, the Sirah of al-Munir b. al-Nayir
al-Ju'lani, and the Sirah of Shabib b. 'Atiyah al-Omani (This Ms. also was given to me by a
Omani friend).
43. I am using a Ms. of this Sirah sent to me by an Omani friend. It occupies the first 70
pages of a Ms. of mixed contents. For the biography of Abu Kahlan cf. Ibn Midad, Sifat nasab
al-'ulama wa mawtihim., 35.
44. For the texts of the sermons of Abu Hamzah and Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi cf.:
34
Isfahani, Aghani., Jahiz, al-Bayan wa al-tabyin.: Ibn Abi al-Hadidi, Sharh Nahj al-balaghah. cf.
infra, (53 Note 115).
45. Mukhtasar Sifat 'ahdath 'Uthman (Part of a Omani Ms. 161-176) (See also, Barradi,
Jawahir., 219; Motylinski, Art., "Bibliographic due Mzab." Bull de Corresp. Africa., III, 16;
Rubinacci, "II 'K. al-Jawahir' di al-Baradi." A.I.U.O.N., N.S., IV, Rome, 1952, 106); For the
letter of Ibn Ibad, Barradi, Jawahir, 161-167; Salim b. Dhakwan, Sirah., 195-201.
46. Barradi, op. cit., 102; Abu Qahtan, Sirah., Ms 21 IC. Salim b. Dhakwan, Sirah., Ms. 202.
47. Darjini, Tabaqat., Ms. 198; Barradi, op.cit., 105; Shammakhi, Siyar., 72; Abu Qahtan,
Sirah., 23.
48. Ibid., 25 IC.; Salim b. Dhakwan, op. cit., 202.
49. Ibid., 203-204; Abu Qahtan, op. cit., 29 h.
50. Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah, Masa'd Abi Ubaidah., Ms.25.
51. Barradi, Jawahir., 141.
52. Salim b. Dhakwan., 203-204.
53. Barradi, op. cit., 146-147; Abu Qahtan, Sirah., 32. Tabari. Tarikh., V. 165-166;
Mubarrad, Kamal., III, 978.
54. Abu Qahtan, op. cit., 33.
55. Tabari, Tarikh, V. 312-314; Mubarrad, Kamil., III 991. Ibn Abu Abi al-Hadid, Sharh
Nahj al-balaghah., editor Harun, V.84; Darjini, Tabaqat., 206-213.
56. Al-Jahiz, al-Bayan wa al-tabyin., editor Harun, Cairo, 1948-1367, II, 65: Mubarrad,
Kamil., III, 949; Darjini, op. cit., 207.
57. Darjini, op. cit., 198; Barradi, Jawahir., 105: Shammakhi, Siyar..72.
58. See below, 75-76.
59. Warijlani, Abu Ya'qub Yusuf b. Ibrahim, al-Dalil., Ms. 150 b IC.: Jitali, Qawa'id., see
Part II text No. 1, 28.; Shammakhi, Siyar., 76; al-Qutb, al-Dhahab al-Khalis., editor Abu
Ishaq, Cairo, 1343 H., 48; Sharh al-Nil., editor Abu Ishaq, Cairo, 1343 H., X, 428-29.,
60. 'Aqwal Qatadah., Ms. VI. 189; Wisyani, Siyar, Ms.31.
61. Mubarrad, Kamil., III, 990.
62. Ibid., 989, 1001, 1004.
63. Ibid., III, 985, 989.
64. Ibid., III, 992; Ibn Abi al-Hadid, op. cit., 85.
65. Mubarrad, op. cit., III, 984.
66. Ibid., III, 988, 989.
67. Ibid., III, 991-97; Tabari, Tarikh, V, 470-71.
68. Ruqaishi, Misbah., 38; Jumaiyil b. Khamis, Qamus al-Shari'ah., Ms. Part 88, the page
relating to the subject; al-Qutb, Risalah shafiyah., 43.
35
CHAPTER II
them all the history (akhbar) and Traditions they knew.10 He also met
'A'ishah, the favourite wife of the Prophet and asked her about the private life
of the Prophet,11 and discussed with her the political problems of the Muslim
community in which she played a major part.12 Apart from Abdullah b.
'Umar, 'Aisha, Abdullah b. Mas'ud, and Anas b. Malik, his principal teacher
was 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas,13 the most learned man among the younger
Companions and known as Habr al-'Ummah (the learned man of the Muslim
community and as al-Bahr (the sea) because of his vast knowledge both of the
Qur'an, its interpretation, and of the Sunnah. Jabir was a close friend of Ibn
'Abbas and his favourite pupil.14
Jabir learned the Traditions of the Prophet from all the Companions he met in
Basrah, Medina, and Mecca. He took advantage of the Hajj to meet the
Companions who came to Mecca at that time for the Hajj from other parts of
the Muslim countries. It is reported that Jabir traveled between Basrah and
Mecca no less than forty times on the Hajj.15 His avidity for acquiring the
Traditions of the Prophet made him go to any lengths to collect them. He
traveled especially to Medina and went to the Banu 'Amr b. Hazm al-'Ansari
and asked them to show him the letter which the Prophet sent with their father
'Amr b. Hazm to the people of Yemen concerning zakat, which they did.16
Jabir acquired a wide knowledge of the Qur'an, Traditions, and Futya. His
teacher Ibn 'Abbas was completely satisfied with him. It is reported that Ibn
'Abbas said, "If the people of Basrah turned to the knowledge ('ilm) of Abu al-
Sha'tha', he would enrich them with the knowledge of the Book of God."17 He
also described Jabir as one of the learned men, and believed that Jabir had
attained such a high standard of knowledge that no-one, even Ibn 'Abbas
himself, need be resorted to in order to formulate legal decisions if Jabir had
already expressed his opinion. When al-Rabi, a man from Basrah, asked Ibn
'Abbas for his legal decision concerning certain problems, Ibn; Abbas said,
"How can you ask us when you have Jabir b. Zaid among you?"18 Other
Companions, viz., 'Abdullah b 'Umar, Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-'Ansari, hold the
same opinion of Jabir as Ibn 'Abbas; al-Bukhari reported from Jabir b. Zaid
that he said, Ibn 'Umar came across me while I was performing the tawaf
(circumambulation of Ka'bah) and said to me, 'Jabir, you are one of the learned
men of Basrah, people will come to you asking for fatwas, so do not give any
legal decision unless it is clearly stated in the Qur'an or a genuine Sunnah,
otherwise you will go astray and lead the people astray."19 It is also reported
that Zaid b. Jubair consulted the Companion Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-'Ansari
about a certain case. After he had given his opinion, he said, "Why do you ask
me when Abu Al-Sha'tha is among you?"20 So then Jabir was one of the
outstanding learned men of Basrah - according to Muhammad b. Mahbub,
Jabir had more knowledge ('ilm) than al-Hasan al-Basri.21 Jabir became the
39
Mufti of Basrah22 and spent his life delivering legal opinions, teaching the
Traditions of the Prophet, and transmitting his vast knowledge of Islam to his
students. Since Jabir was a prominent Tabi'i (follower), his contribution to the
growing Muslim community can be understood within the context of the part
played by the class of al-Tabi'un (followers of the Companions), heritors of the
Companions' direct knowledge and practice of Islam, which they transmitted to
their students. Being a student closely associated with Ibn 'Abbas, who
participated in most political activities of the Muslim community from his
youth, Jabir was able to learn about the conflicting attitudes in the political
activities which started with the civil strife during the Caliphate of 'Uthman,
and ended with the ascendancy of Mu'awiyah.
Living in Basrah, one of the major centres of political activities, and being
contemporary with the events of the lively period (28-93 A.H.), Jabir was able
to form a clear understanding of the complicated course of the political and
religious affairs of the growing Muslim community. As a result, he chose the
most effective way to attain his aims. He kept himself apart from all Political
activities and followed a very careful course in his relations with the 'Umayyad
rulers. On the other hand, he devoted his time to teaching people Islam and
formulating legal opinions on religious problems.
With regard to his way of life, Jabir led a pious and ascetic existence. He once
said, "I asked of my God three things which He granted me; a good wife, a
good riding camel and my daily bread upon which to live from day to day."23
Speaking about his wealth, Jabir told his companions, "I am the richest of all of
you; I possess no dirham, nor do I owe any one a dirham."24 al-Hajjaj b.
'Uyaynah said, "Jabir b. Zaid used to visit us in our mosque; one day he came
wearing an old pair of shoes and said, "Sixty years of my life have passed; these
shoes of mine I like more than any other thing which is past, unless it be good
work I have done."25 Muhammad b. Sirin said, "Abu al-Sha'tha' was pious.26
Simplicity and piety are the main attributes of Jabir's life.
Jabir's wide knowledge of the interpretation of the Qur'an and the Sunnah
made him an outstanding figure in this field of knowledge, and he is described
by the Traditionalists as reliable (thiqah).27 The only exception to this was a
al-'Asili, who regarded him as weak (dha'if) Traditionalist, but his view was
rejected by Ibn Hajar al-'Asqalani.28 Apart from his regular students who
studied Traditions and Futya with him, people used to come to him seeking his
legal opinions on religious matters. Some of these opinions were written in the
form of questions sent to him by friends outside Basrah. He is described as the
most learned man in the field of Fatawa.29 Many of his students used to put
down his legal opinions in writing, but Jabir was not in favour of recording his
opinions in this way; On hearing of his students writing them down, Jabir
40
commented, "To God we belong (Inna lilah). They are writing down the
opinions which I may change tomorrow!30 Yet not-withstanding, most of his
opinions and narrations (riwayat) were recorded by his students. His
knowledge was transmitted to later generations through two channels; the
main one based upon what was recorded by his Ibadhi students such as
Dhuman b. al-Sa'ib, Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah, Abu Nuh Salih al-
Dahhan, Hayyan al-'A'raj, and others. The second is based upon what was
recorded by his non-Ibadhi students, among whom were 'Amr b. Harim,
Qatadah b. Di'amah al-Sadusi, Aiyub al-Sikhtiyani, and others.31
Among the extant works in which legal opinions (Fatawa) and narrations
(Riwayat) from Jabir are recorded are: -
1) Riwayat Dumam; narrated by Abu Sufrah 'Abd al-Malik b. Sufrah, from
al-Rabi' b. Habib, from Dumam from Jabir b. Zaid.32
2) Musnad al-Rabi b. Habib al-Farahidi, from Abu 'Ubaidah, and Duman
from Jabir b. Zaid.33
3) Jabir's correspondence (Jawabat) which contain some of his legal
opinions sent in letters to some of his friends and followers.
All these were recorded by Ibadhis. There are also the following works:-
1) Kitab al-Nikah, which contains legal opinions on marriage, reported from
Jabir. It is still not known by whom this book was narrated, but being
included in the Ms. of K. Nikah al-shighar, by 'Abd al'-Aziz, this suggests that
it was probably narrated by the same author of K. Nikah al-shighar.34
2) K. al-Salat,35 this book is narrated by Habib b. Abu Habib al-Harmi, from
'Amr b. Harim from Jabir b. Zaid.36
3) The narrations from 'Amr b. Dinar, and 'Amr b. Harim, included in parts
V and VI of K. Aqwal Qatadah, contain Traditions and legal opinions mainly
on the subject of marriage, zakat, and prayers, besides his other legal opinions
and Traditions reported from him by Qatadah.38
It is reported that the books of Jabir were in the possession of Abu 'Ubaidah
Muslim b. Abu Karimah, then they came to al-Rabi' b. Habib, then Abu
Sufyan Mahbub b. al-Rahil, then his son Mohammad b. Mahbub, from whom
they were transcribed in Mecca.39
Some Ibadhi historians reported that Jabir himself wrote a large book of
Traditions and legal opinions (Futya) known as Diwan Jabir b. Zaid, and that a
copy of the Diwan was extant in the library of the 'Abbasid Caliph Harun al-
Rashid (786-809 A.D.) It is also reported that the Ibadhi scholar of Jabal
Nufusah, Naffath (Faraj) b. Nasr, managed to transcribe the Diwan and
41
brought it to Jabal Nufusah, but being in opposition to the ruler of the Jabal
and Rustumid Imamate, Naffath destroyed the copy of the Diwan so that his
opponents would not get access to it.40 However, Ibadhi Jurisprudence was
established mainly on the basis of the Traditions, and legal opinions handed
down by Jabir to his Ibadhi students. Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah
said: "Every man of Tradition who has not an Imam in jurisprudence is fallen
into error. If God Almighty had not favoured us with Jabir b. Zaid we too
would have fallen into error."41
Non-Ibadhi scholars have tried to prove that Jabir had no relation with the
Ibadhis, and various stories were reported to show that Jabir himself denied this
sort of relationship.42 Qatadah and Dawud b. Abi Hind reported from 'Azrah
that he said, "I told Jabir that the Ibadhis claim that you are one of them"43
He said, "I declare myself before God quit of them." It is also reported that
Hind b. al-Muhallab said that although Jabir was a close friend of hers and her
mother's, and he used to order her to do everything which might bring her
nearer to God, he never invited he to Ibadhism.44
Careful examination of the above information led to its classification into three
groups:
I. Information reported as from Jabir, in which he denies any sort of relation
with the Ibadhis. In this category comes the information reported in non-
Ibadhi sources only, and transmitted by Thabit al-Banani actually visited Jabir
with al-Hasan al-Basri is also reported by Ibadhis. In all sources, the story
avers that Jabir, on the brink of death, wished to see al-Hasan al-Basri who was
at that time in hiding from al-Hajjaj. Thabit al-Banani told al-Hasan of the
wish of Jabir and both came together secretly to Jabir's house. When they saw
him al-Hasan said to Jabir, "Say that there is no god but Allah, and that
Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah." Jabir replied, "O, Abu Sa'id, on the day
that one of thy Lord's signs comes it shall not profit a soul to believe that never
believed before, or earned some good in his belief." Then he added, "I am of it's
people, and I take refuge with Allah from Hell." On hearing this, al-Hasan
commented, "By God, this is the learned faqih."
All sources reporting the story concur up to this point. The addition that al-
Hasan questioned Jabir on his opinion of the people of al-Nahr and his opinion
of the Ibadhis is reported by Ibn Sa'd alone on the authority of 'Azrah and
Thabit al-Banani. This addition cannot be regarded as authentic for several
reasons:
a) Most sources, including non-Ibadhi sources, reported the story without
mentioning that Jabir spoke of his attitude towards Ibadhis conversation
with al-Hasan as presented above, asserted that Jabir added no further
42
words to this.
b) If Jabir held such opinion, especially concerning these important issues,
then these must have been known before he was dying.
c) The occasion does not seem the most appropriate time to ask Jabir such
questions!
II Information reported from Sunni scholars in which they denied that Jabir
had any relations with the Ibadhis.47 This information, in addition to those
saying ascribed to Jabir himself, regarding the denial of any sort of relation
with Ibadhism, seems to have been invented by the Sunni critics of Hadith, so
that Sunni should accept the Traditions reported by Jabir and on his authority.
For, according to the rules laid down by some of the Sunni Traditionalists,
Traditions reported on the authority of the people of "innovations" are not
acceptable. If the person was Shi'it, or Khariji, or Ibadhi, this was enough to
weaken his authority.48 It is suggested, therefore, that the above mentioned
information was fabricated by some of the Sunni Traditionalists in order to clear
Jabir from the accusation of being an Ibadhi!
III The third class of information consists of the report from Hind b. al-
Muhallab, that Jabir never invited her to Ibadhism.49 This is probably true,
because Jabir was teaching her Islam and distinctive terms Ibadhis and
Ibadhiyah were not used among the early Ibadhis even after the death of Jabir.
Instead, they were using the terms, "al-Muslimun, and Jama'at al-Muslimin."
On the other hand, Ibn Hajar al-'Asqalani, on the authority of al-Du'afa of al-
Saji, stated that Jabir b. Zaid was an Ibadhi.50 Abu al-Hasan al-'Ash'ari,
speaking about the beliefs of the Kharijis, among whom he includes the
Ibadhis, said, "They claim Jabir b. Zaid to be one of their predecessors,
(salaf)."51 The same opinion is reported by Ibn Abi al-Hadid.52 The question
here is whether there was an Ibadhi movement with this name in the time of
Jabir, and what part Jabir played in the movement. To answer these questions,
we must recall the state of the Muslim community at that time - which falls
into three groups:
a) The Umayyads who were in power, and their supporters.
b) The Shi'is or the party of 'Ali b. Abi Talib.
c) The third party can be sub-divided into two groups;
43
children). To this the Kharijis has nothing to reply and they keep silent." 57 It
can be said that at this stage a serious division began within the Muhakkimah
party on account of the move taken by Nafii' b. al-'Azraq, who regarded the
adversary Muslims as idolaters, and treated them as polytheists, and made
Khuruj compulsory for his fellow Muslims. All these opinions were contrary to
the beliefs and the practice of the people of al-Nahrawan and the old
Muhakkimah, and their followers, Abu Bilal Mirdas and his companions. So it
became necessary for the outstanding leaders of this party such as Jabir b. Zaid
to reject the policy of Nafii' and others who held the same opinions as he did,
and to make that clear to all and sundry in order to keep their sympathy.
Among the leaders who were preparing to join Nafii' was 'Abdullah b. Ibadh.
While waiting in the mosque of Basrah, hearing people praying, reciting the
Qur'an, and the call to prayer, he changed his mind and decided against Khuruj
58, and "held it lawful to live amongst the Muslims and mix with them on
terms of mutual tolerance."59 He held the same opinions as the people of al-
Nahrawan and their followers up to his time, but he rejected strongly the views
of Nafii' and declared himself to be dissociated from him.60 It may be
suggested, then that after the revolt of Nafii', Jabir appointed Ibn Ibadh to
reject the views of Nafii' and to propagate openly the true views of the Muslims
(i.e. the Ibadhis). In fact, because of the successful part played by 'Abdullah b.
Ibadh at the stage, the whole movement afterwards bore his name, and was
known among other Muslims as al-Ibadiyyah.61
Several events suggest that Jabir had a close and effective relationship with the
Ibadhi movement at a very early stage. It is reported that Jabir used to go to
Mecca in the company of another member of "Jama'at al-Muslimin" called Abu
Faqqas al-'Aswad b. Qais. They both used to meet Ibn 'Abbas in Mecca. One
year, Jabir came to Ibn 'Abbas alone, and the latter asked Jabir about his
friend, Jabir told him that he was imprisoned by Ibn Ziyad. Ibn Abbas asked
Jabir, "Is Abu Faqqas suspected?" Jabir said, "Yes." Ibn Abbas asked Jabir,
"Are not you suspected as well?" Jabir said "Yes, I am".61 Shammakhi, further
reports that an aged member of Jama'at al-Muslimin, Abu Sufyan Qunbur was
arrested and beaten with a hundred lashes to make him give information about
another member of the Jama'at al-Muslimin but he refused. Jabir b. Zaid said,
I was very near to him and was expecting him to point me out, but God
protected him."62 The other event which shows that Jabir had an effective
connection with Ibadhi movement is his order to one of the Ibadhi youths to
kill Khardalah, a former member of the movement who gave away the names
of some Ibadhi members and caused their deaths at the hands of tyrants.63
This case was afterwards cited as a proof of the obligation to kill the defamer of
the Ibadhis (Taain fi al-Din) in the Ibadhi jurisprudence.64
However, after the revolt of Nafii' and other Kharijites, the distinctive character
45
money for land tax and protection tax, without doing injustice to the subject
population, or acting against the teaching of Islam. The letter sent by Jabir to
al-Nu'man on this matter contains interesting information about the methods
used in collecting taxes, and shows how, out of three hundred dirhams, less
than one hundred reached Bait al-Mal; while the rest was taken by the dihqans
(Chiefs of farmers) and tax collectors.70 The other person is called Yazid b.
Yasar, who sent a letter to Jabir telling him that he had been put in charge of
some posts in Oman and asking him for his opinion on certain problems. 71
Among other people of Oman who had contacts with Jabir was Malik b. Asid
or 'Usaid, who sent a letter to Jabir offering to buy him a she - camel from
Oman, to which Jabir agreed, as he indicated in his letter to Malik b. Asid. 72
Apart from sending legal opinions to his friends in those far-off places, Jabir
asks them to report to him on the situation in their countries, and tell him
about anything, which happened there. 73
These wide contacts with powerful people and families, and the general respect
for the knowledge of Jabir, made al-Hajjaj b. Yusuf wary of him. He tried to
win over Jabir to his side, and offered him the Qadiship, but Jabir refused this
offer.74 Ibadhi sources reported that Jabir, in many cases, showed his
opposition to al-Hajjaj, telling him that the Prophet said, "God curses the
unjust, their helpers, and those who help their helpers, even by handing them a
pen."75 He also refused to agree with al-Hajjaj on the matter of rubbing over
the shoes for ablution; and said, "How should I rub over the shoes while God
commands us to wash the feet?" 76 Jabir himself was cautious and careful in
his contacts with his friends and followers. This can be clearly noticed from his
correspondence. In five of his letters he asked that they be destroyed. He gave
his reasons in three of them; a) In his letter to al-Harith b. 'Amr, one of the
oldest 'followers' of Kufah, 77 Jabir wrote, "Know, may God set your affairs
aright, that you are in a land in which I do not wish you to mention my name,
so do not transmit anything that I have written to you" 78 This could have
been during the rule of Ziyad, for al-Harith died during the Caliphate of Yazid
b. Mu'awiyah. b) In his letter to 'Abd al-Malik b. al-Muhallab, Jabir wrote,
"Write to me of what you need, and sent it to me in secret with whoever you
trust, for you know our situation and what we fear those who look for reasons
to harm us, so do not run into a risk by which you may cause us to perish; may
God set your affairs aright." 79
In another letter, Jabir described the affair of the rulers (al-umara') as follows,
"For you know the affairs of the rulers; we are afraid of them they search for
excuses against us." 80 All these items of information show that Jabir was
always afraid of the rulers and was cautious in his activities.
In one of his letters to 'Abd al-Malik b. al-Muhallab, Jabir expressed his
47
gratitude to God for saving 'Abd al-Malik and protecting him, and prayed to
God to save him and protect him, "until He shows you and shows us, in your
affairs and ours what would make us happy, and crushes our enemy." 81 It is
likely that Jabir was referring to al-Hajjaj in these last words.
At his clash with the Muhallabids, al-Hajjaj arrested and imprisoned them. It
is possible that al-Hajjaj exiled Jabir and one of his supporters, Hubairah, to
Oman82 so that he would not be of any assistance to the Muhallabids. Three of
the leading personalities of the Ibadhi movement, viz., Abu 'Ubaidah, Dumam
and Abu Salamah were arrested in this period and imprisoned by al-Hajjaj. 83
This was the first serious act of suppression which faced the leaders of the
Ibadhi movement, including Jabir himself, under the rule of al-Hajjaj. It
appears that the main reason which made al-Hajjaj change his policy towards
the Ibadhis was his clash with the Muhallabids. It could be suggested that
because of the strong relations between Jabir and his family, al-Hajjaj thought
that Jabir might take action against him in order to help the Muhallabids.
Otherwise, no other reason can be suggested to explain this change in al-
Hajjaj's policy towards Jabir and the Ibadhi movement. However, the
Muhallabids managed to escape from prison and flee to Sulaiman b. Abd al-
Malik in Damascus, from whom they received protection. 84 According to
those who say that Jabir died in 93 A.H. it is possible that he returned to
Basrah, because of the friendly attitude to Sulaiman and al-Walid b. 'Abd al-
Malik towards the Muhallabids.
Those were the outlines of Jabir's policy and public activities. The most
important part Jabir played was in his contribution to Islamic jurisprudence,
and in establishing the Ibadhi School of law.
It is an obligation for the Muslim to learn a few verses of the Qur'an, and some
practical teachings of the Prophet, in order to observe the religious obligations
such as prayer and other religious duties. The development of the Muslim
community, and its rapid expansion, created new centres in which group of the
Companions settled. One of the major centres was the city of al-Basrah which
was established during the Caliphate of 'Umar b. al-Khattab as a military base,
and soon became one of the intellectual capitals of Islam. In this city Jabir was
brought up, and there he met a large number of the Companions who were
eager to teach people the religion of Islam. A new class grew up in Islamic
society composed of the students of the Companions; this class was known as
al-Tabi'un (the 'followers' or 'successors'). They were the second generation who
inherited the teachings of Islam as presented to them by the 'Companions,' and
became the missionaries of the religion. They taught people the Qur'an,
Traditions of the Prophet, and set before them the example of the true Muslims
in their practical lives. Among the old 'followers' of Basrah who dedicated his
48
life to this task was Jabir b. Zaid. It is already mentioned that he became one
of the most learned men in Basrah. As a result he became the Mufti of Basrah;
According to 'Iyas b. Mu'awiyah, "Jabir was the only Mufti in Basrah." 85 This
probably was for a limited period, since other sources reported that other
learned personalities shared him the burden of fatwa in Basrah, among whom
were al-Hassan al-Basri, 'Amr b. Salamah al-Jarmi, Abu Maryam al-Hanafi,
and Ka'bb Sawd. 86 Jabir's student, 'Amr b. Dinar thought so highly of Jabir
that he went so far as to say, "I have not seen any one of greater knowledge of
Futya than Jabir b. Zaid". 87
A brief study of the method which Jabir followed in his deliverance of legal
opinions would help to understand the nature of the Ibadhi jurisprudence.
Being a Traditionalist, his wide knowledge of Tradition and the legal opinions
of the Companions marked his method as a jurist. To him, the bases of any
legal opinion are the Qur'an, the Sunnah, and the opinions of Companions;
then comes his own judgement. The second source for his legal opinions, next
to the Qur'an, is Sunnah, for as Jabir states: "Whatever affair which Sunnah
opposes is demolished."88 He again says, "Nothing of people's affairs in which
they oppose Sunnah can be right."89 However, Jabir in following this way,
kept to the rule laid down by the Companions. His teacher 'Abdullah b. 'Umar
warned him not to give any legal decision unless it was clearly stated in the
Qur'an or authentic Sunnah.90 It is also reported that Jabir said, "I met a
number of the Companions; most of their legal opinions (fatwa) were
Traditions of the Prophet."91 After Sunnah comes juristic speculation (ra'y).
Concerning this third source of jurisprudence, Jabir believed that his own
judgement must come after that of the Companions, not before. He wrote,
"The Juristic speculation (ra'y) of those who were before us is better than our
opinions. Yet again the successor recognizes the superiority of his predecessor.
The more deserving of such a right are the migrants with the Messenger of God
(Muhajirun), and those who followed them in good-action; for they have
witnessed and learned. It is our duty to step in their footprints and follow their
traces."92 He further says, "I am only a learned person following the traces
which have been well-prepared before me. I have no confidence or proof in
formulating legal opinion except narrations (riwayat), about which we may
differ.93 In his letter to 'Anifah, Jabir expressed the same principle as follows;
"There is nothing of that (formulating legal opinions) except what people
narrate formulating is concerned, it is of less value."94 The following case
shows how fast Jabir held to this principle. It is a case of the woman divorced
by her sick husband. According to Ibn 'Abbas, she must wait until the danger
of her husband's illness is over in order to keep her-right to the dower and
inheritance; if she married another husband before that, she will lose her right
to the dower and inheritance. Jabir after quoting this opinion of Ibn 'Abbas,
49
said, "If not because of the saxing of Ibn 'Abbas in this case, it would please me,
even if she married while her husband was still in the state of danger, that she
deserves the whole affairs, unless her share in the inheritance has gone." 95 But
Jabir would defer his own opinions to that of Ibn 'Abbas in order to fulfil the
above mentioned principle, though he might think his own opinion in this
particular case was better. And so it can be said that the sources from which
the Ibadhi jurisprudence is derived are the Qur'an, Sunnah and Ra'y. But ra'y
was used only where no Traditions are available. As a conclusion to this brief
study it can be stated that the school of law established by Jabir b. Zaid was
largely influenced by Traditions. 96 This method of Jabir was followed after
his death by his Ibadhi students who built their jurisprudence mainly on
al-'athar. It is reported that Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim, the successor of Jabir was
told that the people of Oman use juristic speculation, (ra'y) in forming legal
opinions. His comment was, "They will not be safe regarding cases of blood
shedding and marriage." 97
The biographers who wrote Jabir's biography gave five different dates for his
death. According to those who report that Jabir died on the same week as
Anas b. Malik the Companion, there are two dates; the first is 91/709,as
reported by Ibn Hibban,98 the second is 93/711. This date is given by al-Rabi'
b. Habib, Bukhari, Ahmad b. Hanbal, al-Fallas, al-Najjar, Abu Nu'aim, al-
Salimi and Ibn Hibban.99 All these are Traditionalists, who must be more
accurate in giving nearly the exact date of the death of the Muhaddith
(Traditionalist), for it is of great value to them, regarding the correctness of the
isnad (Chain of authorities reporting a Tradition).
The Historians such as Ibn Sallam, Ibn Sa'd, Waqidi, al-Mas'udi, al-'Asma'i and
Ibn Midad gave the date 103/721,100 while Shammakhi alone gave the date
96/714; 101 Ibn Hajar quoted from Ibn 'Adiy that Jabir died in the year
104/722; 102 In order to try and establish the exact date of Jabir's death the
following facts must be considered:
a) Most of the sources reported that on the night of his death, Jabir wised to
see al-Hasan al-Basri, who was at that time in hiding from al-Hajjaj.
According to this information Jabir's death must have occurred before the
death of al-Hajjaj in 95/713.
b) Most of the sources reported that Jabir died before the death of the
Companion Anas b. Malik who said, on hearing of Jabir's death, "Today died
the most learned man of the people of earth"103 Dates given for the death of
Anas are 91 and 93.
c) During the Caliphate of 'Umar b. 'Abd al-'Aziz (99-101) Ibadhis had active
contacts with him, and an Ibadhi delegation was sent to him. Ibadhi sources
50
mentioned only the comment of Abu 'Ubaidah about the results of that
embassy and nothing is heard from Jabir concerning this event. It is hard to
believe that Jabir would not have commented if he was alive, a fact which
suggests that he died before 101/719, and not in 103, as reported by historians,
or 104, as reported by Ibn 'Adiy. Although the precise date cannot be arrived
at in a case such as this, the year 93, given by the Traditionalists and confirmed
by the Ibadhi authorities, is to be considered, in my opinion, fairly close to the
truth.
51
1 Ibn Midad, Sifat nasab al-’ulama’. Ms. 4 According to Ibn Hibban Jabir was born in a place
called al-Huraqah near Oman, but this could be a mis-spelling of Farq. Cf. Ibn Hibban, K.
Mashahir 'ulama' al-'amsar., editor M. Fleischhammer, (Cairo, 1959),89.
2 Bukhari, Tarikh., II/I, 203, note.
3 Yaqut, Mu'jam al-Buldan., (Cairo, 1906), III, 175. According to al-'Asma'i Jawf is in
Yemen; Cf.Ibn Qutaibah, K. al-Ma'arif., editor Muh al-Sawi, (Cairo, 1934), 200.
4 Salimi, Tuhfah, 2nd edition, (Cairo, 1347 H.), 55-57
5 Ibid., 56
6 Salimi, Hashiyat al-Jami'i- al-Sahih., I, 8
7 Barradi, Jawahir., 155; al-Qutb, Sharh al-'Aqidah., 132
8 Warijlani, al-'Adl., Ms. I 197; Shammakhi, Siyar., 77
9 Anonymous, K. Nawazil Nufusah., Ms. 208 b; Mus'abi, Hashiyah 'ala al-Musarrih., Ms.
147 a.
10 Ibid., 147 b; Ibn Midad, op. cit., 4
11 Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz, K. Nikah al-shighar., Ms. This information is to be found in
another Ms. Attached to this book containing Ibadhi narrations, under the title: bab fada'il
Jabir b. Zaid., 22., Cf. Al-Qutb, Sharh al-Nil., IX, 233,and the note 233-34; Ibn Sallam,
Bad'ul-'Islam., Ms.42.
12 Shammakhi, Siyar., 67
13 Abu Nu'aim, Hilyat al-'awliya'., III, 90; al-Dhahabi, Tadhkirat al-huffaz., I, 62; Ibn Hajar,
Tahdhib., II, 38-39; Ibn Midad, op. cit.,4
14 Abu Nu'aim, Hilyah., III, 85-6; Dhahabi, Tadhkirah., I,62
15 Baghturi, Siyar Mashaikh Nufusah., Ms.3
16 Warijlani, al-Dalil., Ms. 38a; al-'Adl., Ms. I,72 . On the authority of Ibn 'Abd al-Barr.
17 Ibn Sa'd, Tabaqat., VII, 179-180; Bukhari, Tarikh., II/I, 204; Dhahabi, op. cit., I,62; Abu
Nu'aim, op. cit., III,85; Ibn Hajar, op cit., II,38.
18 Loc. cit
19 Bukhari, op. cit., II/I,204; Abu Nu'aim, Hilyah., III,86; Ibn Hazm, Mulakhkhas 'iblal al-
qiyas wa al-ra'y wa al-'istihsan wa al-taqlid wa al-ta'lil., editor Sa'id al-'Afghani, Damascus,
1960, 69.
20 Abu Nu'aim, op. cit., III, 86
21 Salimi, Hashiyat al-Jami'i al-sahih., I,7
22 Ibn Sa'd, Tabaqat., VII, 131; Abu Nu'aim, op. cit., III,86; Ibn Hajar, Tahdhib., 38-39.
23 Riwayat Ibadhiyah., Ms attached to K. Nikah al-shighar., 21.
24 Loc. cit.
25 Ibn Sa'd Tabaqat., VII,180; Abu Nu'aim, Hilyah., III,88.
52
CHAPTER III
development of the Ibadhi doctrine, the growth of their organization, and the
rapid expansion of their movement in Yemen, Oman, Khurasan, and North
Africa is undoubtedly due to Abu 'Ubaidah, and his gifted abilities both as a
scholar and statesman. 7 He played the greatest part as the most successful
leader of the Ibadhi movement during the last period of the 'Umayyad rule and
the beginning of the 'Abbasid rule. Shammakhi reported that Abu 'Ubaidah
died during the Caliphate of Abu Ja'far al-Mansur (136-158). 8 It is already
mentioned that he lived for eighty years which he spent in learning and
teaching. It can be said, therefore, that Abu 'Ubaidah lived in the period
starting with the end of the first half of the first century up to the end of the
first half of the second century. It is also suggested that he became the leader
of the Ibadhi movement after he was released from prison in the year 95, two
years after the death of Jabir b. Zaid. 9
To understand the distinctive character of Abu 'Ubaidah and the aspect which
distinguished his personality, one must refer to the influence of his different
teachers. First there was 'Urwah b. 'Udayyah, a strong and pious man of great
experience of religious and political conflict which took place during the civil
wars between 'Ali and Mu'awiyah. He was the first man to reject arbitration
and fought against 'Ali in the battle of al-Nahrawan; he was later killed by
'Ubaidullah b. Ziyad. The servant of 'Urwah described him to 'Ubaidullah as
follows: "I never prepared his bed for him at night, nor brought him food
during the day;"10 meaning that he always fasts during the days, and spends
the nights praying. Abu 'Ubaidah, being a client of 'Urwah must have been
influenced by him a great deal. His other teacher Suhar al-'Abdi was a great
orator (Khatib), great genealogist, and author of a book on 'Amthal,11
(proverbs), as well as a theologian.12 His teacher Jabir b. Zaid was a great
Jurist, and an eminent Traditionalist; Abu 'Ubaidah, having studied under
these great men, possessed all the various qualities they had. He was an ascetic,
pious worshipper,13 a brilliant orator,14 an excellent teacher, and great
scholar, covering fields of theology, Jurisprudence, and Traditions. And, finally,
he had an excellent organizing ability.
In the field of Ibadhi doctrine, Abu 'Ubaidah kept to the same method as Jabir
b. Zaid, but he contributed more theological opinion in order to face the rising
problems in this field. This may also be due to the influence of his teacher
Suhar al-'Abdi. In his legal opinions, Abu 'Ubaidah kept to the same line as his
predecessor, Jabir b. Zaid, of whom he was very proud, as he said, "Every man
of Traditions (sahib hadith) who has no Imam in jurisprudence is gone astray.
If God had not favoured us with Jabir b. Zaid we too would have gone astray."
15 He also kept the same respect for the Companions and their opinions. He
said, "He who has no teacher among the companions possesses nothing of the
religion. God has favoured us with 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas b. 'Abd al-Muttalib,
56
cousin of the Prophet, 'Abdullah b. Mas’ud, and 'Abdullah b. Sallam, who were
firmly rooted in knowledge. We walked in their steps, followed their sayings,
relied on their conduct, and imitated their method....."16
The method followed by Abu 'Ubaidah was to keep fast to the teachings of the
Companions and the followers, and not to form any line which might lead way
from their way. To him, following Sunnah is a sign that the Muslim has a good
soul. He related from Ibn 'Abbas that he said, "He who heard a Tradition
inviting to moral excellence and did his best in following it; if the Tradition was
as he heard it, he gets two rewards; the reward for memorising the Tradition,
and the reward for acting according to it. If the Tradition was not as he heard
it, he will get the same reward, for God will not waste the wage of good-doers.
The reward for his good-doing and worship of God will not be wasted unless
his work was in a heresy." 17 After quoting this opinion of Ibn 'Abbas, Abu
'Ubaidah commented, "Know that the Muslim if God granted him a good soul
which is directed to obedience to God, whenever he hears what brings him
nearer to God he will do his best in following it, and he will be rewarded as
previously mentioned. But if the person has a bad soul he becomes weary of
worshipping God and dislikes worship. All his concern will be in argument and
doubt; so whenever he hears a Tradition which invites him to work, he opposes
it with analogical reasoning (qiyas) and says, "This Tradition is not authentic,
(Sahih), because his opinion which agrees with his desire has nothing to do with
obedience to God." 18 However, Abu 'Ubaidah was a Traditionalist and was
largely influenced by Traditions as a Jurist and Theologian. He was against
using ra'y (personal judgement). When he was told that the people of Oman
use ra'y in forming legal opinions, Abu 'Ubaidah said, "They will not be safe in
the cases of blood shedding and marriage." 19 His followers were taught not to
accept any opinion unless it is a narration, 'Athar, from the Shaikhs of the
Ibadhi School. It is reported that 'Umm Shihab, an Ibadhi woman was visited
by 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz and Saleh b. Kathir, students of Abu 'Ubaidah,
she asked them for a legal opinion and Saleh answered her. She asked him from
whom he narrated that opinion. His reply was that it was his own opinion
based on his ra'y. She said, "Throw your ra'y against the wall, I do not need it."
20 During his time more attention was given to the system of al-walayah, and
al-bara'ah, both in theory and practice, than the time of Jabir b. Zaid. The
following two cases show the change of attitude as between the two leaders:
I It is reported that an Ibadhi called al-Hassan b. 'Abd al-Rahman proposed
to 'Umm 'Affan who was an Ibadhi as her father; when her father consulted
her, she would not agree to marry him. Jabir's opinion was that she must not
be given in marriage against her wish. When a non-Ibadhi Muslim proposed to
he and she agreed to marry him, Jabir ordered her father to give her in
marriage to him. 21
57
missionaries of Basrah was Salamah b. Sa'd (Sa'id) who was sent to North
Africa, towards the end of the first century and the beginning of the second
century H.25 It is reported from Imam 'Abd al-Wahhab from his father 'Abd
al-Rahman b. Rustam that he said, "The first man who brought the Ibadhi sect
to al-Maghrib, was Salamah b. Sa'd. He came to us in Qairawan, with the
company of 'Ikrimah, the client (mawla) of Ibn 'Abbas, both riding the same
camel on which they carried their provisions; Salamah b. Sa'd was propagating
Sufrism. 'Abd al-Rahman said, 'I heard Salamah saying, 'I wish that the Ibadhi
movement manifests, even for one day from morning to night, I would not
mind if my head was cut off after that."26 It appears that the mission of
Salamah b. Sa'd in North Africa was of three purposes:
i) To propagate the doctrine of the Ibadhi school.
ii) To choose some leading members from the visited countries and send them
for training in Basrah.
iii) And to have a close study of these countries and report to the Ibadhi leader
in Basrah.
As a result of the journey of Salamah b. Sa'd to North Africa, which took place
about 105-107 H., the bearers of learning (Hamalat al-'ilm) were sent to
Basrah and studied with Abu 'Ubaidah for five years.27 Several missionaries
have been sent to different countries for the same purposes as those of Salamah
b. Sa'd; for there were bearers of learning (Hamalat al-'ilm) to Yemen,
Hadramawt, Khurasan, and Oman.28
All activities of the Ibadhi movement in Basra were carried out in secrecy, the
special state known in Ibadhi doctrine as the state of (Kitman), secrecy.29 The
Umayyads' suppression against any opposition obliged Ibadhi to carry on with
their activities in secret for safety, and this was assured by establishing special
centres (majalis) in secret places where they exercised their religious and
educational activities.
It appears that the idea of secret centres (majalis) was founded as early as the
days of Ziyad b. Abi Sufyan, for it is reported that 'Urwah b. 'Udayyah was
caught in a sarab (under ground cave), where he was worshipping.30 These
secret retreats were used of meetings of the members of the movement where
they used to invoke God and discuss their present situation. These kind of
majalis were mentioned by Abu Bilal Mirdas as well.31 From the given
information it appears that there were three types of majalis:
i) Majalis of the Shaikhs, or the leaders of the movement; in these majalis the
Shaikhs discussed the plans of the organization, and meetings in such majalis
usually took place during the night, and no young members were allowed to
59
attend the meetings unless they were fully trusted. Abu Sufyan Mahbub b. al-
Rahil said, "We heard one night that a meeting was held in the house of Hajib,
the Shaikhs did not allow us to attend their meetings during the night; I told
one of the Omanis, 'Let us go to Hajib's house, for they may allow us in.' We
went to the house and were permitted to enter. We found there al-Mukhtar b.
'Awf, and two or three Shaikhs, Hijab ordered us to inform Balj b. 'Uqbah
about their place; so we told him. After we prayed 'Isha' they started speaking,
each one stood and spoke for some time, then he sat down and another stood,
and so on, until the light of the morning. Al-Malih said, "Shu'aib b. 'Amr,
brother-in-law of Hajib, and one of the best Ibadhi youths, came to Hajib's
house that night; the distance between his residence and the house of Hajib was
about three miles, but Hajib refused to let him in." 32
ii) The second type of Majalis is majalis for all members to which they come to
hear addresses from the Shaikhs on religious subjects in general. There was no
special programme for such majalis; it depends on the persons who were in
charge of them and their abilities and inclination. "If a person was seen with
the impression of submissiveness on his face, that would mean that he had
attended the majalis of Abu Sufyan Qunbur recently, for his majalis were for
invocation of God, recital of the Qur'an, and frightening people of the Hell and
the chastisement of God." 33 Some time the organiser of the majalis would ask
the speakers to stress on a certain subject to bring the attention of certain
members to it. 34 A large number of these majalis were formed in Basrah
during this period. Ibadhi historians mentioned the majalis of Abu al-Hurr 'Ali
b. al-Hussain which used to be on Monday and Thursday, 35 majalis of Abu
Sufyan Qunbur, and the majalis of 'Abd al-Malik al-Tawil. 36 Women have
special rooms in these majalis and were allowed to attend this type of majalis.
37 Some women offered their houses to be used for the majalis. 38
iii) The third kind of the majalis are those which were held for regular
students who wanted to study Ibadhi doctrine, or to be trained for missionary
work. It is reported that Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah used to teach
his students in a secret cave with someone on guard outside to inform them if
he saw a stranger coming, by moving an iron chain so Abu 'Ubaidah would
stop his lecture and carry on with making baskets; his covering work, from
which he took the title al-qaffaf (basket maker).39 Only members of the
movement were allowed to join these majalis but if they showed any sort of
deviation they were to be expelled from the majalis.40 During the period of
Jabir and Abu 'Ubaidah, members were very careful in their activities, on some
occasions they attended their meetings wearing women's dresses or disguised as
merchants and workers so no-one of their enemies would take notice of
them.41 In the time of Ziyad and his son the houses which were used for
holding majalis were attacked on many occasions and members were arrested,
60
but in spite of all the difficulties, the Ibadhi's activities at that time were
carried out mainly through the majalis.42
It appears that the idea of majalis was transferred by Ibadhi students from
Basrah to North Africa. It is reported that Abu Khalil al-Darkali, a student o
the 'bearers of learning', told his students, "Go to the majalis, you lazy boys, for
there have been who joined them between his country and Qabis, and between
his country and Fazzan."43 It was said that he meant himself by that.
However, the majalis were established during the stage of secrecy to ensure the
safety of the Ibadhis and they became afterwards one of the essential
requirements of the Ibadhis community during the periods of Kitman (secrecy).
It can be said that the Ibadhi movement with the leadership of Abu 'Ubaidah
Muslim was an intellectual religious movement, its activities in Basrah were
mainly educational. The policy of Abu 'Ubaidah was to educate the members
and teach them the Ibadhi doctrine, and to have as many students as he could
from different provinces of the Muslim countries, in order to establish a
universal Imamate over the Muslim world.44 In order to carry out his activities
in Basrah, Abu Ubaidah disconnected himself completely from the rulers so
that he would be on the safe side. His policy in this respect was contrary to the
policy of his predecessor Jabir b. Zaid. Abu 'Ubaidah's instructions to his
followers were that they must not have any connections with the rulers.
'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz a student of Abu 'Ubaidah, reported that one of the
rulers ('Ummal) said to an Ibadhi member, "Let me write down your name in
the register (diwan) and share with you your salary; and my brother will save
you the trouble of the oath (al-bai'ah), and you take the money spontaneously."
'Abdullah said, "I went to Abu 'Ubaidah and asked him about his opinion
concerning that offer, he said, 'Do not go to them or be near them there is no
good for you in that."45 A similar story is reported by al-Rabi' b. Habib,
another student of Abu 'Ubaidah, who succeeded him as a leader of the Ibadhi
community in Basrah. He said, "An Ibadhi member wanted to accompany a
newly appointed ruler and to go out with him. We asked the man who ordered
you to go out with this governor? Another man said that Abu 'Ubaidah
allowed him to do so. Al-Rabi' said, "I went to Abu 'Ubaidah and asked him if
he had allowed that person to accompany the governor," he said, 'I did not
order him with anything of that nature; it is said in the proverb: The fox said, 'I
have ninety-nine tricks, no one of them is more useful to me than that the dog
does not see me, and I do not see him.' It is the same with the Muslim; there is
nothing better for him than not to see them (the rulers) or let them see him, by
God; I am afraid for their Mu'adhin, that he will not be safe in calling for
prayers, for them, so how about the others?"46 This firm attitude taken by
Abu 'Ubaidah towards the rulers was the main mark of his policy, the only
exception to this rule being 'Umar b. 'Abd al-'Aziz to whom a delegation was
61
Jundub sold his house in Suhar in order to settle that debt.59 He also was sent
to Mecca during Hajj to make peace between the Ibadhis of Hadramawt during
the time of 'Abdullah b. Said.60 He also used to look after the activities of the
organization in Basrah and to call for the general meetings.61 Hajib died
before Abu 'Ubaidah during the Caliphate of Abu Ja'far al-Mansur.62
Among the other outstanding Shaikhs of the Ibadhi community of Basrah
were: ii) Hayyan al-'A'raj, a well-known Traditionalist, who lived in Basrah in
the same area as his teacher Jabir b. Zaid.63 He was older than Abu
'Ubaidah,64 studied with Jabir b. Aid, and passed on Traditions from Jabir to
the Ibadhi students, even to those who studied with Jabir, such as Abu Nuh
Salih al-Dahhan.65 iii) Abu Nuh Salih b. Nuh al-Dahhan, from Basrah, who
lived with Tayi' in Basrah,66 studied with Jabir b. Zaid67 and participated
with Abu 'Ubaidah in teaching Ibadhi doctrine. It is reported that al-Rabi' b.
Habib said, "I learned Jurisprudence from three men: Abu 'Ubaidah, Dumam
and Abu Nuh."68 Among the extant works which were narrated from Abu
'Ubaidah and Abu Nuh is Kitab nikah al-shighar of 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz,
their pupil.69
iv) Dumam b. al-Sa'ib, originally from al-Nadb in Oman.70 He was born in
Basrah and studied with Jabir b. Zaid, and narrated Traditions mainly from
him. 71 Even Abu 'Ubaidah himself learned Traditions reported by Jabir b.
Zaid, from Dumam. The most important part Dumam played was teaching
Ibadhi doctrine and Traditions most of which were recorded by Abu Sufrah
from Abu 'Amr al-Rabi' b. Habib Dumam was imprisoned with Abu 'Ubaidah
and another Ibadhi Shaikh called Abu Salim by al-Hajjaj b. Yusuf, and was
released after the death of al-Hajjaj. 72 There were other Shaikhs such as Abu
al-Hurr Ali b. al-Husainy, Abu Hamzah al-Mukhtar b. 'Awf, Balj or Balkh b.
'Uqbah, and others.
v) Among the young students of Abu 'Ubaidah who played a great part in the
Ibadhi organization in Basrah during the life of Abu 'Ubaidah and afterwards
was Abu 'Amr al-Rabi' b. Habib b. 'Amr al-Farahidi. He lived in Basrah in a
place called al-Harbiyah. 73 Later he left Basrah for 'Oman and lived in
Ghadafan in al-Batinah.74 He was a contemporary of Jabir b. Zaid and
studied under him; he studied also under Dumam b. al-Sa'ib, Abu 'Ubaidah,
and Abu Nuh Salih b. Nuh al-Dahhan.75 During the time of Abu 'Ubaidah he
was, with other members, in charge of the majalis,76 and Abu 'Ubaidah
appointed him as a Mufti of the Ibadhis during his life, and described him as
"Our pious, reliable, and trustworthy man." 77
It was with the assistance of these men that Abu 'Ubaidah carried out his policy
successfully, and managed to established two Ibadhi states which were a real
threat to both 'Umayyads and 'Abbasids afterwards both in Arabia and North
63
Africa.
It is clear that Basrah was the main centre for Ibadhi activities in Iraq.
However, there is evidence that other active Ibadhi communities existed in
Kufah, Mawsil, Mecca, Medina, and some parts of Khurasan where a good
number of great scholars emerged and contributed to the Ibadhi School. The
opinions of those scholars were presented side by side with those of Jabir. Zaid,
and Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim of Basrah as is evident in the early Ibadhi works
such as the Mudawwanah of Abu Ghanim, al-Diwan al-ma'rud, and Riwayat
Dumam. Apart from this fact, very little is known about these communities
and their contribution to the Ibadhi movement in political and educational
activities.78 However, it was a clear policy of the early Ibadhi leaders to direct
their activities to the remote parts of the Islamic Empire so that they would not
be easily crushed. They carefully avoided attempting any open revolution in
Iraq, and concentrated on southern Arabia79 and North Africa. The following
pages are aimed at throwing light on the expansion of the Ibadhi teachings in
North Africa.
areas such a way that the most important centres of central North Africa were
covered so that each area would have its own religious leader of the native
people. These students were: Abu Dirar Ismail b. Dirar al-Ghadamsi, or
Ghadamas; Abd al-Rahman b. Rustam who was of Persian origin, from
Qairawan, and 'Asim al-Sadrati of Sadratah. Abu al-Khattab 'Abd al-'A'la,
originally from Yemen, joined them in Basrah96 where he was pointed out by
their teacher Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim, as the first Imam of the expected Imamate
of North Africa. This fact shows that the power which was still to count more
on the question of leadership was that of the Arab settlers, and Abu al-Khattab
was sent to North Africa to cover this need. There were no Nufusis among this
mission because the Nufusi representative on a similar mission, Ibn Maghtir al-
Jannawani had gone to Basrah and returned earlier.97
The training of these students was undertaken by Abu 'Ubaidah himself. They
spent five years with him and he was satisfied with the standard, which they
acquired. Apart from their political struggle which started on the year 140 H.
under the leadership of Abu al-Khattab, and continued under the leadership of
his colleague 'Abd a-Rahman b. Rustam, who managed to flee to central
Algeria after the death of Abu al-Khattab, and established the Rustamid
Imamate in the year 160 H. which lasted up to 296 H., the 'bearers of learning'
played an important part in passing over to their fellow Ibadhis of North Africa
the teachings which they had learned in Basrah. It is not known whether they
had brought those teachings in a written form. In fact, the only written work
ascribed to one of the 'bearers of learning' is the Tafsir of 'Abd al-Rahman b.
Rustam. 98 It is reported that Ibadhi doctrine in written form by Abu
'Ubaidah Muslim was to be found in Fazzan in Libya during the middle of the
second century H. In a letter to the Fazzani scholars 'Abd al-Qahhar b. Khalaf,
Jannaw b. Fata al-Madyuni, of the Berber tribe of Madyunah, wrote, "And
know, may God bless you together with us, that I long very much for you
presence and the renewal of personal contacts with you, so that you may benefit
from the Books of Abu 'Ubaidah, may God bestow his mercy on him." 99
There is no information how these books of Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi
Karimah got into the hands of his Fazzani scholar, but it may be that he
himself had studied under Abu 'Ubaidah in Basrah and brought them back
with him.
The point which must be asserted here is that the final form of the Ibadhi
doctrine was established in Basrah and was brought over to North Africa
through the missionary students, who seem to number more than the five
mentioned above, and who are known in Ibadhi sources by the title (Hamalat
al-'ilm). It is also clear that the contracts between the centre of the Ibadhi
movement in Basrah and North Africa were established at an early stage of the
latter's history.
67
There is no evidence of any Ibadhi scholars among Berbers existing before the
time of Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim. The first Berber Ibadhi scholar mentioned in
Ibadhi sources is Ibn Maghtir al-Jannawani, who studied under Abu 'Ubaidah
in Basrah before the latter established his final opinions on the Ibadhi legal
system.100 Ibn Maghtir was the Mufti in Jabal Nufusah before the return of
the five 'bearers of learning.' Ibadhi sources also mention 'Amr b. Yimkitin as
the first Ibadhi scholar of Nufusah to start teaching Qur'an in the mosque of his
village, Afatman. He became afterwards one of the important leaders of
Nufusah and participated in the wars of Abu al-Khattab against the 'Abbasid
army.101
According to the available information, it is clear that the Ibadhis of North
Africa were in firm contact with Basrah for the study of Ibadhi teaching from
their start. It is also certain that such contacts existed towards the end of the
first century H.
The Ibadhis of North Africa depended very much on the scholars of Basrah,
especially Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim, in whatever problems they faced on legal and
theological matters. Among the extant works which Abu 'Ubaidah wrote to
the people of the Maghrib is his treatise on zakat which he wrote to a certain
Ismail b. Sulaiman al-Maghribi.102 Jitali also reported that Abu 'Ubaidah sent
responses (Jawabat) on theological questions to the people of the Maghrib,103
but these responses are still missing. These contacts were presumably very
effective during the time of Abu 'Ubaidah before the return to Africa of the five
students (Hamalat al-'ilm), who took over the burden of propagating Ibadhi
teachings and deepening its roots amongst the Maghribis. The most important
part of this task was carried out by Abu Dirar al-Ghadamsi, Abu Dawud al-
Qibilli, and 'Abd al-Rahman b. Rustam. The others, namely Abu al-Khattab
'Abd al-A'la and 'Asim al-Sadrati directed their activities towards political and
military struggle and they both died before they could settle down to
participate in any educational activities.
The contacts between the two Ibadhi communities of the 'East', (al-Mashriq),
and the 'West', (al-Maghrib), was maintained all the time. When 'Abd al-
Rahman b. Rustam was elected to the Imamate in Tahert, the Ibadhis of the
'East' sent a special delegation to examine his conduct, and when they were
satisfied with him, they gave him full support morally and financially.
Afterwards, whenever a conflict took place among the Ibadhis of North Africa,
they sought its resolution from their fellow Ibadhis of the 'East'. A number of
'letters' were written by scholars of the 'East' giving their opinions on religious
and political issues which occurred among the Ibadhis of the Maghrib. 104
Ibadhi literature written by scholarsof the 'East' was presented to the Ibadhis of
the Maghrib.105 During his rules, Imam 'Abd al-Wahhab b. 'Abd al-Rahman
68
b. Rustam, sent for books from the 'East'. His fellow Ibadhis of the 'East'
transcribed and sent to the Maghrib forty camel loads of material on paper
worth one thousand dinars for which Imam 'Abd al-Wahhab paid.106 It was
also during the time of 'Abd al-Wahhab that Abu Ghanim Bishr b. Ghanim al-
Khurasani traveled to Tahert to present his works to the Imam. Educational
contacts between the two communities were firmly maintained thereafter. The
annual conference of the Ibadhis took place during the time of the Hajj. They
met at Mecca to exchange news and compare notes.
As a whole, the Ibadhis in North Africa played a little part in the development
of the Ibadhi thoughts, but they did preserve them both in theory and practice.
After the return of (Hamalat al-'ilm), a number of great scholars emerged
among the Ibadhis of the Maghrib known as the students of the 'bearers of
learning' among whom were: 'Abd al-Wahhab b. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Rustam,
Abu Khalil al-Darkali, Muhammad b. Yanis, and others.107 After the
founding the city of Tahert, which was the capital of the Ibadhi Imamate, it
became one of the most important centres for propagating Ibadhi teachings.
The Imams themselves took part in teaching and in writing books. There were
other centres in Nufusah as well as in other places in the Maghrib. After the
collapse of the Imamate of Tahert, the cultural activities of the Ibadhis moved
to Warijlani and Wad Righ. Jerba Island also became one of the main
educational centres as a result of the activities of the 'Azzabah council in the
area. Jabal Nufusah, although its contacts with the Imamate in Tahert were
weakened after the Battle of Manu against Aghlabids in the year 283 H.,
carried an almost independent role in preserving Ibadhi teachings. Several
centres and schools were established in different areas of the Jabal for teaching
the Ibadhi doctrine. A large number of great Ibadhi scholars emerged in the
three communities of Jabal Nufusah, Jerba Island and central North Africa, i.e.
Southern Tunisia and Algeria, and participated a great deal in Ibadhi studies.
Most of the important works written by these scholars over the centuries are
still extant and deserve special academic attention.
69
balaghah., V, 101-102
31. Shammakhi, Siyar., 66
32. Darjini, Tabaqat., 235-236; Shammakhi, op. cit., 90-91
33. Ibid., 93
34. Ibid., 101; Darjini, op. cit., 256
35. Loc. cit.
36. Darjini, op. cit., 236; Shammakhi, op. cit., 101, 107
37. Ibid., 93
38. Ibid., 108,109; Darjini, op. cit., 21
39. Darjini, op. cit., 21; Shammakhi, op. cit., 124
40. Cf. Infra, (368) ff.
41. Shammakhi, Siyar 108; Darjini, Tabaqat. 237
42. Loc. cit.
43. Baghturi, Siyar, 84; Shammakhi, Siyar. 211-12
44. Lewicki, article 'al-Ibadiyyah'. E.I., 2nd edition
45. Riwayat Ibadiyyah., Ms.14
46. Ibid., 14-15
47. Bisyani, Sirah., Ms. 19.; Ibn Midad, Sifah., 9-10
48. Cf. Supra, (3)
49. Shammakhi, Siyar, 83-84
50. Abu Ghanim, Mudawwanah., 11, 8
51. Isfahani, 'Aghani, XXIII, 112
52. Darjini, Tabaqat., 22; Shammakhi, Siyar., 124
53. Ibn Midad, Sifah., 6, 29, 30
54. Shammakhi, Siyar., 92
55. Ibid., 92; Ibn Midad, op. cit., 6
56. Shammakhi, op. cit., 118
57. Ibid., 84, 90
58. Ibid., 92; Ibn Midad, op.cit., 6
59. Ibid., 6; Shammakhi. Op. cit. 106
60. Ibid, 92
61. Shammakhi, Siyar., 85
71
62. Ibid., 91
63. Yaqut, Mu'jam al-Buldan., 11, 173
64. Shammakhi, Siyar., 89
65. Ibid., 90
66. Ibn Midad, Sifah 12-13
67. Shammakhi, op. cit., 88; Darjini, Tabaqat., 241-42
68. Darjini, op. cit., 261; Shammakhi, op. cit., 104
69. Cf. Infra, 164
70. Ibn Midad, op. cit., 6,29
71. Shammakhi, Siyar., 88
72. Ibid., 87, 96; Darjini, Tabaqat., 234-35
73. Ibid., 261; Ibn Midad, Sifat nasab al-'ulama., 36-37
74. Salimi, Hashiyat al-Jami'i' al-sahih., I, 4
75. Ibn Midad, Sifah., 28; Darjini, Tabaqat., 261, Shammakhi, Siyar., 103
76. Ibid., 86
77. Darjini, Tabaqat., 261; Shammakhi, op. cit., 103
78. Cf. Lewicki, article 'al-Ibadiyyah', E.I., second edition
79. Ibid., 651.; "Les Ibadites dans I'Arabic du Sud au moyen age.", Folia Or., I, (1959), 3-17.
80. Lewicki, Etudes Ibadites., I, 54
81. Abu Ishaq, The introduction to K. al-Wad., 6
82. Al-Baghturi, Siyar Masha'ikh Nufusah., Ms. 69, 141
83. Ibid., 59; Lewicki, op. cit., 48-49
84. Darjini, Tabaqat., 11: Shammakhi, Siyar., 98
85. Darjini, op. cit., 11; Mus'abi, Hashiyah 'ala al-Musarrih., 150a
86. Ibn Hajar al-'Asqalani, Tahdhib al-Tahdhib., VII, 263-273
87. Al-Sufi, Su'alat., quoted by al-Qutb, Sharh al-Nil, X, 236
88. Darjini, Tabaqat., 11-12; Shammakhi, Siyar., 98
89. Ibn 'Abd al-Hakam, K. Futuh Afriqiyah wa al-Andalus, edition Albert Gateau, Algiers,
1947, 140.
90. 'Ali Mu'ammar, Al-Ibadhiyah fi Libya., I, 45; Ihsan 'Abbas, Tarikh Libya, 43
91. Ibn 'Abd al-Hakam, op. cit., 140
92. Al-Raqiq al-Qairawani, Tarikh Afriqiyah wa al-Maghrib., 128-129
93. Ibn 'Abd al-Hakam, op. cit., 142
72
CHAPTER III
IBADHI JURISPRUDENCE
In 1903 Professor Duncan Macdonald wrote: "Of the jurisprudence of the
Ibadhis we know comparatively little. A full examination of Ibadhi fiqh would
be of the highest interest, as the separation of its line of descent goes for back
behind the formation of any of the Orthodox system." 1
The full examination of the Ibadhi fiqh has not been carried out since then as
was hoped by this scholar. Instead, the Ibadhi school of law has been treated
by those who studied Islamic law with little attention and was always referred
to in generalised statements of little value.
Although Schacht was aware of the fact that the Ibadhi school of law was
attributed to the tabi'I Jabir b. Zaid, 2 he concluded his note on the Ibadhi law
by stating that the Ibadhis derived their law from the orthodox schools. 3
Contrary to what he avers, the Ibadhi School from the start took a detached
73
Sunnah of the Apostle of God. He likes only what god and His Apostle
like. 21
2) Concerning the decision of the Imam whether it can be changed by the
learned men of the community or not, Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim said, "If his
decision was contrary to the 'Book' and the Sunnah, and the decision on the
case is known in the Qur'an and the Sunnah, they must change what is
contrary to the 'Book' and the Sunnah." 22
3) Safety lies in what came from God and His Apostle, and peril in
opposing them. No one can be right except he who agrees with them. 23
The students of Abu 'Ubaidah kept to the same line. Some of his students went
to the extent of rejecting the opinions of early Ibadhi authorities, such as Jabir
b. Zaid and Abu 'Ubaidah, when authentic Traditions were reported on a case,
even by non-Ibadhi authorities. On the question of hiyazah (acquisition of the
right of possession), it was reported that Jabir b. Zaid, out of precaution, added
ten years more to the ten years fixed by the Prophet as the maximum time for
acquisition of the right of possession of land or property, if the original owner
did not claim his right to it during those twenty years. 'Abdullah b. 'Abd
al-'Aziz, a student of Abu 'Ubaidah, rejected the opinion of Jabir on the basis of
the Tradition from the Prophet, reported by both Medani and Kufi authorities,
that the fixed time for hiyazah was ten years only. 25 His argument concluded
with the following statements, "What the Prophet said is the only truth. The
Sunnah must come first, provided it is an authentic Sunnah from the Prophet.
As for analogy, (qiyas), though it may be old, it still cannot supersede the
Sunnah." 26
are well known in the Islamic collections of Hadith, and are regarded by the
Traditionalists as 'reliable'. 28 As for the scholars such as Abu Sufyan Mahbub
b. al-Rahil, they also were Traditionalists and were regarded by Sunni
Traditionalists as 'reliable', though they were not as well known as those
mentioned previously. 29 Apart from transmitting Tradition of the Prophet,
Jabir b. Zaid participated in recording Traditions of the Prophet by writing
down Traditions from some of his colleagues30 and allowing his students to
write down Traditions on his authority.31 Ibadhi sources repeated the
information given by Abu Zakariya' al-Warijlani, in his Siyar about the Diwan
of Jabir b. Zaid, which he had composed, and which was available in the
library of the 'Abbasid Caliph, Harun al-Rashid.32 Hajji Khalifah also
mentioned Diwan Jabir b. Zaid,33 but he did not give any further information
about the Diwan or the source of his information about the Diwan or the source
of his information about it. As he has not mentioned any Ibadhi sources in his
book, it is possible that he derived his information about the Diwan of Jabir
from non-Ibadhi sources unknown to us. This however, supports the Ibadhi
information about the Diwan, and creates hope for a future discovery of one of
the earliest works on Hadith. 34 In support of the assertion that Jabir b. Zaid
has recorded Traditions and other forms of legal opinions from the Companions
and some of his colleagues, the following information should be considered,
"Abu 'Amr 'Uthman b. Khalifah al-Sufi, from Shaikh Yikhliftan b. Aiyub, from
Abu Muhammad said, 'The Diwan of Jabir was in the possession of Abu
'Ubaidah, then in the possession of al-Rabi' b. Habib, then in the possession of
Abu Sufyan Mahbub, then in the possession of his son Mohammad b. Mahbub,
from whom they (i.e. The books or the volumes of the Diwan) were transcribed
in Mecca" 35 It may be of some value to mention here that the word Diwan is
used in many places in Ibadhi chronicles meaning a collection of books and not
a particular book. 36
Early Ibadhi sources preserved few notes regarding the rules of narrating and
recording Traditions. Abu 'Ubaidah said, "It does not matter to change the
position of the words of the Traditions of the Prophet or of the 'Athar by
bringing them forward or putting them back if the meaning is the same." He
was asked, "What about adding or omitting letters such as ( , ) or ( i ) if the
meaning was not affected?" He said, "I hope that it will not matter." 37
Speaking about from whom religious knowledge ('ilm) is to be obtained, Abu
'Ubaidah said, "It must not be learned from a heretic propagating his heresy; a
fool whose foolishness is well known; a liar, even if he is truthful in his futya; or
from him who did not distinguish his school, (madhhab), from others." 38
It appears that knowledge of Tradition is not necessary for scholars to teach
'ilm, which means fiqh, i.e. knowledge of legal opinions. Abu 'Ubaidah was
78
asked about the person who did not memorise Traditions of the Prophet - is he
reliable (thiqah), can he teach 'ilm? He said, "God be praised, is it that every
one memorises Hadith? Nay, knowledge is to be learnt from the reliable
person even if he does not know a single Tradition." 39
Concerning adoption of Traditions, there are two references, the first one
reported in Masa'il Abi 'Ubaidah. He was asked whether the questioner should
follow the fatwa of the reliable person if he based it on a Hadith narrated from
a Companion. He said, "If you recognized the truth you must follow it,
otherwise you must not." He added, "You must not submit to a man who tells
of all he has heard, but you must distinguish the reliable opinions, and ask who
has more knowledge than he has." 40 As for referring to books for delivering
legal opinions, Abu 'Ubaidah was asked about the case when a learned man
says to another man, "This is my book, take it and transmit it, and deliver
fatwas from its contents." He said, "The man is not allowed to deliver a legal
opinion except what he has heard from the learned man, or states that he saw
in a book so and so." 41 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz stated that the Traditions
which were current among the Companions and the 'Successors' must be
adopted, but those which were not well known (shawadh) must not be taken
into account. 42
However, more rules concerning hadith appeared later in the work of Abu
Ya'qub al-Warijlani, al-'Adl wa al-'insaf. Most of those rules are known in
Sunni books on 'ilm al-hadith. It is assumed that Abu Ya'qub may have picked
up some of them from his Sunni teachers in Cordova, and a number those rules
would have been handed down to him from Ibadhi authorities of earlier times,
such as Muhammad b. Mahbub, and his father Abu Sufyan, for it is reported
that their books came into his hands. 43 It may be of some importance to
mention here the rules laid by opinions, from which legal opinions can be
delivered. The rules are that the writer should be a (waliy), the man who
dictates should be a (waliy), two 'awliya' should inspect the dictation, and two
other 'awliya' should inspect the writing. 44
AL-JAMI AL-SAHIH:
The work which contains the Ibadhi collection of hadith, in the real technical
sense of the term, is al-Jami'i al-Sahih, or Musnad al-Rabi b. Habib. The
original version of the book composed by al-Rabi' b. Habib is not in common
use. The current version is that rearranged by Abu Ya'qub Yusuf b. Ibrahim
al-Warijlani entitled Tartib al-Musnad.45 This latter copy contains additional
narrations added by Abu Ya'qub. These additions occupy parts three and four
of the current editions and contain the narrations from al-Rabi' on theological
questions, all of which are included in part three. In part four, there are the
79
settled in Kufah. Ibn 'Abbad al-Misri came originally from Egypt and, after
completing his studies in Basrah, he went back to Egypt and settled there.62
On his way to Tahert, Abu Ghanim recorded some opinions, related to Ibn
'Abbad, from the Ibadhis of Egypt, and included them in the Mudawwanah. 63
Abu Aiyub Wa'il b. Aiyub was from Hadramawt.64 He participated in the
wars of 'Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi in Yemen, and in establishing the Ibadhi
Imamate of Hadramawt, and was in the delegation sent to Mecca on the behalf
of the Ibadhi group who opposed 'Abdullah b. Sa'id, the Imam of Hadramawt,
to negotiate the split between the two Ibadhi groups of Hadhramawt with the
Ibadhi Imams of Basrah.65 Later he settled in Basrah and became the head of
the Ibadhi Shaikhs of Iraq, after al-Rabi' b. Habib had left for Oman. 66 As for
Hatim b. Mansur, 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz and Abu Ghassan Mukhallad b.
al-'Amarrad, nothing is known about their origins, but they lived in Basrah,
studied with Abu 'Ubaidah and contributed a great deal in the development of
Ibadhi jurisprudence, especially 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz.
Abu Ghanim recorded the Mudawwanah from those above-mentioned scholars
either through hearing their opinions directly or by narrating them from
someone who had heard them. 67 The Mudawwanah is divided into twelve
books, (kutub), 68 each book containing a number of chapters, ('abwab). The
following are the Kutub of the Mudawwanah:
(1) The book of prayer, (al-salat)
(2) The book of alms-tax, (al-zakat)
(3) The book of fasting, (al-sawm)
(4) The book of marriage, (al-nikah)
(5) The book of divorce, (al-talaq)
(6) The book of gifts and presents, (al-hibah wa al-hadiyah)
(7) The book of legacies, (al-wasaya)
(8) The book of blood-monies, (al-diyat)
(9) The book of beverages and fixed punishments,(al-'ashribah wa al-hudud)
(10) The book of testimonies, (al-shahadat)
(11) The book of sales, (al-buyu')
(12) The book of decisions and judgements, (al-'ahkam wa al-'aqdiyah)
The Ms. Which I am using for this study adds another 'book' with the title:
The book of decisions and judgements (al-buyu' wa al-'aqdiyah)
The Mudawwanah covers all the subjects treated by Ibadhi scholars in the
83
Part ii: Narrations relating to Zakat, fasting, beverages, and also narrations
from al-Rabi' b. Habib concerning marriage.
Part iii: Marriage and divorce, and narrations from al-Rabi' b. Habib on
different topics.
Part iv: Beverages, slaughtering of animals, hunting, etc.....
Part v: Narrations from 'Umar b. Harim from Jabir b. Zaid on the subject of
marriage.
Part vi: Narrations of Qatadah dealing with sales, marriage, and pilgrimage. It
also contains narrations of 'Amr b. Dinar from Jabir b. Zaid on marriage.
Part vii: Narrations from Qatadah on the subject of ablution.
After part vii, there follows K. Jabir b. Zaid on prayers, narrated by Habib b.
Abi Habib.75 Some copies include K. Jabir in part vii of Aqwal Qatadah.
The order of the books included in these Mss. of al-Diwan al-Ma'rud differed
from one to another. The following are the existing works included in them, or
in some of them, regardless of their order in each one of the Mss:
1) Part I of 'Athar al-Rabi', (Riwayat Dumam) 76
2) Part II of Futya al-Rabi b. Habib77
3) K. Nikah al-shighar of 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-'Aziz. 4 parts
4) K. al-Nikah of Jabir b. Zaid78
5) K. al-Siyam, (fasting). The book begins with the narrations of Abu al-
Mu'arrij from his teacher Abu 'Ubaidah in form of questions and answers.
Then it continues after the following title: bab 'ikhtilaf al 'Ulama fi al-Siyam,
presenting opinions of different scholars on the subject, pointing out the
opinions decided upon by the Ibadhi Imams, especially Abu 'Ubaidah.
6) K. al-mumtani'in min al-hudud min al-Imam. In Cairo Ms. K. al-'Ummal
wa man yali 'ala al-nas. The book deals mainly with the subject of
administration and the duties of the Imams and the rulers and their relations
with their subjects. It seems that this book is part I of K.al-'imamah, which
deal with similar subjects, but is missing in the Cairo Ms. And incomplete in
the Baruniyah Mss.
7) K.Kaffarat al-'aiman, opinions ascribed to the Kufans.
8) K.al-Wasaya, narrations from Abu Ubaidah Muslim.
9) K. al-Diyat
10) K. al-Qismah wa Tafnin Usuliha, opinions ascribed to the Kufans.
85
11) K. al-Buyu'
12) Abwab al-Hudad
13) Al-'Ahkam
14) K. al-Shur'ah wa Tafnin 'Usuliha
15) K. al-fatwa al'ijarat, opinions ascribed to the Medinese
16) K. al-Qada' fi al-qirad, sayings ascribed to the Medinese
17) K.al-Qada' fi al-taflis wa al-'uyub
18) K. al-Diyat, opinions ascribed to the Kufans
19) K. al-Kafalat
20) K. al-Wada'i wa al-'a'riyah, sayings of the Kufans
21) K. al-'A'riyah
22) K. al-Shahadat
There is also the treatise of Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim on zakat and K. Dhikr
masa'il al-haidh wa talkhisiha. The author of the latter work is not known, but
it appears that it was composed at a later period than the previous works.
Apart from this last book, all the material included in this large book is
reported from early Ibadhi authorities and covers all legal and religious
problems which occurred during the first two centuries of Islam. The book also
contained the current narrations on different subjects from Kufan and Medinise
authorities, all examined and criticised by Ibadhi scholars of Basrah. A great
deal of the material of these works is reported from the same authorities from
which Abu Ghanim al-Khurasani recorded his Mudawwanah, a fact which
supports the view that the present work discussed here was also recorded by
Abu Ghanim. The final conclusion on this matter needs further evidence. The
discovery of a good complete Ms. of this work would be of great help in this
respect.
Attached to this book in the same Mss. is K.al-Nikah of Jabir b. Zaid. Both
works provide the early and original Ibadhi opinions on the subject of marriage,
a subject on which Jabir b. Zaid, the founder of the Ibadhi school, was
described by Ibn ;Abbas as "The best authority." 81
These above-mentioned works are the backbone of Ibadhi jurisprudence in its
first two centuries. They contain a clear and detailed account of the efforts
made by early Ibadhi scholars in developing their school.
The present study of the nature of Ibadhi school of law and the methods
adopted by its founders is based mainly on those works, so a clear account can
be given of pure Ibadhi views before the possibility of any direct contact
between the Ibadhi school and other Islamic schools of law founded later.
The role of Sunnah as the second source of jurisprudence has already been
mentioned. Individual judgement, or ra'y is mentioned by Jabir b. Zaid on
various occasions. There is much evidence that he had recourse to individuals
judgement in delivering legal opinions. A number of Ibadhi and Sunni sources
reported a statement of his concerning the recording of his opinions, which
runs:
"To God we belong! They are writing down the opinions which I may change
tomorrow." 82 Jabir also denied himself the right of individual judgement
where the Companions had formulated their opinions.83 However, those
quotations indicate that Jabir used his own ra'y when there was no opinions on
the case reported from the Companions. The precedence of opinions delivered
by the Companions was a recognised principle among the Ibadhi authorities.
Jabir b. Zaid expressed this view in one of his letters as follows:
"The juristic speculation (ra'y) of those who were before us is better than the
opinion we hold. Yet again the successor recognises the superiority of his
ancestor. The most deserving such a right are the emigrants who accompanied
the Prophet of God (al-Muhajirun) and those who followed them in good-
doings: for they have witnessed and learned. It is our duty to follow in their
87
footsteps and follow their tracks." 84 More evidence can be quoted to justify
this attitude of Jabir. 85 When the Companions differ between themselves,
Jabir retains the right to choose from their opinions which ever he prefers. In
such cases he usually follows the opinion of his teacher Ibn 'Abbas.86
As for Abu 'Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah, it is already mentioned that he
accredited the views of his school to the Companions 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud,
Abdullah b. Abbas and Abdullah b. Sallam, all of whom he described as being
"firmly rooted in knowledge" 87 (al-rasikhuna fi al-'ilm). He also stated that
"those who had intelligence and understanding would not be interested in views
and opinions which emerged after the time of the Companions; it is the aim
only of those who became lax in their worship to be interested in what
happened after the Companions." 88
Although Jabir b. Zaid disliked writing down his opinions for fear that he
might change them, he did not opposed using individual judgement in forming
legal opinion on matters which were not dealt with by the Qur'an or Sunnah.
His successor Abu Ubaidah discouraged the usage of ra'y in forming legal
opinions. When he was told that the people of Oman deliver legal opinions on
the basis of individual judgement, he commented, "They will never be safe
with cases of marriage and blood-shed." 89
The approved method among early Ibadhi authorities on the formulation of
legal opinions was that the decision in any legal case should be based in the first
instance on the Qur'an; if there was no ruling to be derived from the Qur'an
recourse should be to the Sunnah; if it was not dealt with in the Sunnah, it
should be taken from the consensus of the Companions (ijma' al-Sahabah), and
if the Companions differed among themselves in their opinions then the utmost
care must be taken to choose the best of the Companions' opinions. In any
case, where there was no previous decision on the question to be derived from
the Qur'an, Sunnah, or opinions of the Companions, the decision on the case
should then be derived from the opinions of the early authorities of the Ibadhi
school, and the soundest opinions must be followed. 90
It is stated that ante-ceding opinions of Companions or early authorities should
not be abandoned.91 Early Ibadhi authorities showed great concern to follow
ante-ceding opinions when should. Even 'Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz, who was
known for his fondness of qiyas and individual judgement, stated on many
occasions that he would not use his personal judgement where a sound opinion
from his predecessors was reported. 92
After the first three decades of the second century H. Ibadhi opinions on most
legal and religious questions were settled. This stage took place during the
later years of Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah. It is reported that the
88
Nufusi scholar, Ibn Maghtir al-Jannawani, who studied under Abu Ubaidah
Muslim in Basrah before the five "bearers of learning," (Hamalat al-'ilm),
abstained from giving legal opinions on the arrival of the latter from Basrah.
His reason for his attitude was that he had studied under Abu Ubaidah, before
the latter had made up his mind about the different opinions he taught him,
while the "bearers of learning" studied under Abu Ubaidah after he had decided
the final opinions. 93
Among the students of Abu Ubaidah, Abu al-Mu'arrij and Abdullah b. Abd al-
Aziz used to oppose the opinions of their teacher on grounds of analogical
reasoning.94 This attitude of the two Ibadhi scholars aroused their colleagues
against them.95 Before the split of the Ibadhi school, whenever the students of
Abu Ubaidah differed, the opinions of al-Rabi' b. Habib were followed.96
Later, both Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz and Abu al-Mu'arrij found followers in the
Nukkarite group, who adopted their views in jurisprudence. 97
In spite of the disagreement between early Ibadhi authorities concerning
individual judgement and analogical reasoning, these principles became part of
the recognized methods of Ibadhi jurisprudence or procedure. They strongly
opposed reliance on the teaching of a master (taqlid). It is a duty of those who
attain the required standard of knowledge to use their individual judgement.
Among the earliest works of the Ibadhis of North Africa in which rules of
Ijtihad were assembled and clarified is K. al-Tuhaf of Abu Rabi' Sulaiman b.
Yakhlaf al-Mazati.98 Speaking of the question of Ijtihad al-ra'y, Abu al-Rabi',
after indicating the different views on the opinions resulting from individual
judgement, stated that the Ibadhis held that one opinion only can be right, but
that if Muslims did their utmost to reach the right decision but failed, they
would be rewarded for their effort, and would not be blamed for an incorrect
decision. The matters in which personal judgement is allowed are those which
were no dealt with the Qur'an or Sunnah, or by previous authorities. 99 The
person who is allowed to use his personal judgement must possess a full
knowledge of Qur'an, Sunnah, and opinions of previous authorities; such a
person has the right to use personal judgement and formulate legal opinions,
and whoever denies him this right is 'infidel-ingrate.'(Kafir). Unqualified
persons may not use individual judgement and whoever concedes them such a
right is 'infidel-ingrate.' If any person uses his individual judgement in cases
dealt with in Qur'an or Sunnah, or by the consensus of the Muslims, and
opposed them he had gone astray.100 Abu al-Rabi' Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf
concluded his notes on this subject with the following statements:
"Individual judgement (al-ra'y) is allowed to every learned man ('Alim) at all
times, and is forbidden to every ignorant man (Jahil) at all times."101
To Ibadhis the doors to individual judgement (Ijtihad) have always been wide
89
open; they have never been locked at any stage for qualified persons.
Regarding disagreement on opinions resulting from personal judgement in
cases related to Furu', Ibadhis maintained that only one opinion can be right,
but Muslims are allowed to adopt other opinions if they believe them to be
right though, in fact, they are not, as long as they have done their utmost to
formulate the correct opinion.102
This principle was later opposed by two Ibadhi scholars who founded groups of
their own; Naffath b. Nasr, founder of Al-Naffathiyah, and Ahmad b. Hussain,
founder of al-Husainiyyah. 103 Their view was that only the right opinion was
to be followed, and those who followed by other opinions were sinners. 104
This view of Naffath and Ibn al-Hussain was refuted by the rest of the Ibadhi
scholars on the basis that disagreement on opinions concerning cases of Furu'
took place among the companions and they held it lawful for everyone to keep
to his own opinion regardless of whether it was the correct opinion or not, and
they, i.e. the Companions, did not condemn each other for it. 105
Analogical reasoning (qiyas) also took its place as a recognized method among
Ibadhi authorities for deriving legal opinions as early as the second half of the
second century H. It was largely practised by the students of Abu Ubaidah,
especially 'Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz and Abu al-Mu'arrij. Although al-Rabi' b.
Habib and his party opposed qiyas and were known for their strict adherence to
'athar,106 the method of analogical reasoning was later recognized by all
Ibadhis and was largely exercised.
Al-Warijlani mentioned that the Ibadhi scholars were familiar with all kinds of
qiyas, including 'Istihsan (preference) which was practised by Ibadhi authorities
in a number of cases. The importance of ra'y and qiyas in the Ibadhi school was
pointed out by al-Warijlani in al-'Adl wa al-insaf. 108 It was a recognized
principle among Ibadhis that the Sunnah judges over Qur'an, and ra'y judges
over Sunnah. The application of this principle appeared in the rules and law as
laid down by Ibadhi authorities for the stage of secrecy (maslak al-kitman) of
their community. 109
On grounds of analogical reasoning Ibadhis regarded the stage of secrecy of
their movement as identical with the corresponding stage of the Prophet's life
and the Muslim community during the Meccan period. Therefore, they
suspended all legal punishments (hudud) and confined their execution to the
authority of the Imam of the 'manifest state'. 110
Friday services were also suspended in places other than the 'seven capitals'
(al-'amsar al-sub'ah).111 There is a disagreement of opinion regarding jihad:
some scholars allowed it and others prohibited it. 112
90
The death penalty other than by stoning (rajm) was valid during both stages of
secrecy and manifestation. This punishment covered the following: a) the
apostate (al-murladd); b) the defamer of Ibadhi views (al-Ta'in fi al-din); c)
blood offenders (al-junah); and, d) those who rejected the authority of the
shari'ah and refused to restore the rights of other people, (mani'u al-haqq); all
these were to be killed either by whip or by weapon except for the blood
offenders; it was up to the next of kin to the condemned (waliy al-dam) to
decide how the punishment should be carried out.
The unproven allegation of a wife's adultery (li'an), and the denial of the
paternity of a child, born by the wife accused of adultery (li'an) by her husband,
as a result of li'an, was also suspended during kitman.
As for the duty of ‘association’ (walayah), both 'walayah' with individuals
(walayat al-'shakhs) and 'walayah' with the people of the Capital (walayat al-
baidah) were also suspended during secrecy (kitman).
All these rules and laws which suspended many laws derived from the Qur'an
and Sunnah, were based only ra'y and analogical reasoning.113 According to
al-Warijlani, "All or most of the laws of secrecy (ahkam al-kitman) are based on
'preference'." 114
orthodox Sunni schools because their law was established before the Sunni
school came into existence. When Jabir bin Zaid, the founder of the Ibadhi
school died Malik bin Anas was about three years of age,118 and Abu Hanifah,
the Master of the Hanafi school, was about 12 years of age.119 As for the
similarity of opinions of all Islamic schools, this is due to the same origins from
which they all derived their legal systems; Qur'an, Sunnah, and ijma.
When speaking about the sectarian legal system, Coulson pointed out that the
Kharijite law is a cohesive system with its own spirit and character.120 He also
followed Schacht's view concerning the variants between the Ibadhi and
Sunnite legal systems, stating that "the great bulk of the Khariji law (this
including Ibadhis) - and certainly its basic tenets - can find adequate authority
among the Sunni jurists.'121
As the Ibadhis have derived their legal system from the same sources as other
schools, i.e. Qur’an, Sunnah, and ijma, and have used almost the same
methods of juristic speculation in formulating opinions which were not dealt
with in the previous sources, the differences which appeared between their legal
system and those of other Islamic schools were limited to Furud. The difference
occurred in cases where Ibadhis possessed Traditions narrated by their
authorities which the other schools did not approve of and vice versa. It also
resulted from the difference of opinion in interpreting either of the two
principle sources, Qur’an or Sunnah
In the following pages a brief review of a number of outstanding features of
Ibadhi law is presented in order to illustrate the nature and the extent of the
divergence.
silent whether they are night or day prayers, while in Friday prayers and Idd
(festival) prayers, though they are day prayers, the recital in them should be
made aloud because of the recital of other chapters in them besides the Fatihah.
As both Asr and Zuhr are silent prayers, they should be subject to the same
rule. So the Ibadhis followed the opinion of those who reject the recital of
another surah apart from the Fatihah Zuhr and Asr prayers.133
ii) The second point of difference is Qunut (the imprecation against political
enemies during the ritual prayers).134 Sunni and Shiite schools acknowledge
its validity. As for Ibadhis, they reject Qunut and hold that praying with the
Imams who perform Qunut is futile and those prayers should be offered
agin.135 Amr b. Harim is reported to have said, "Jabir b. Zaid was asked
about Qunut in the Fajr and Witr prayers; he said, 'It is an innovation invented
by people; it was not known during the life of the Prophet, he did not perform
Qunut in the Fajr prayers, nor did his 'successors (Khulafauhu) after him.'"136
ii) The third point of difference is about prayers during travel (Salat al-safar).
There is a number of items on which Ibadhis differ from some or all other Sunni
schools.
b) Shortening salat (Qasr) during journeys is considered by Ibadhis as Fard
(obligatory); both Kufans and Hanafites adopted the same view. The Malikis
held that Qasr on a journey is Sunnah. There are two more opinions on this
matter; the first one is that qasr is a concession (rukhsah) but it is preferable to
pray in full. The other opinion is that the shortening of prayers on journey is a
matter of choice. Each of the above views is based on Traditions ascribed to the
Prophet.137
b) The distance from which shortening of prayers begins to be operable:
Ibadhis, together with some of the Kufans and Zahiris, maintained that it is
two farsakhs, a distance equal to about six miles. This opinion is based on a
Tradition reported from the Prophet on the authority of Anas b. Malik. The
two Companions, Ali b. Abi Talib and Abdullah b. Abbas, maintained the
same opinion. As for Malik, Shafii, and the Medinese, they held that the
distance should be not less than four journeys (about one day travelling). Some
of the Kufans and Abu Hanifah held that it should not be less than three days,
and they ascribed their opinion to Ibn Masud.138
b) The time after which the 'travelers' should perform the full prayer:
The Ibadhi opinion is that the 'traveler' should pray abbreviated prayers, even if
he stays forever in the place to which he has journeyed, unless she adopted it as
a homeland (watan) or, according to Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah, he
owns a house in it. Both Malikis and Shafiis held that the 'traveler' should
complete the prayer if he decided to stay for four days or more. Abu Hanifah
94
and Sufyan al-Thawri held that he should complete the prayer if he decides to
stay for fifteen days. Ibadhi opinion is based on the practice of a number of the
Companions, such as Ibn Umar who is reported to have stayed in Adharbaijan
for six months, or, according to another narration, seventeen months, praying
short prayers. It is also reported from Ibrahim al-Nakhai that Alqamah b.
Qais, the Companion of Ibn Mas’ud, stayed in Khuwarizm for two years
praying short prayers, and that the Companion Sad b. Abi Waqqas, with a
number of the Prophet's Companions, stayed in al-Qadisiyah for a long time
praying the shortened form of the prayers. Jitali pointed out that the cause of
the difference in this matter was due to the fact that the Prophet did not fix a
time limit for that.139
Another point may be added here as a point of difference between the Ibadhis
and other Islamic schools. It concerns the discharge (qada) of days not fasted
from the previous Ramadhan. Ibadhis held that compensatory fasting days to
discharge those not fasted in Ramadhan should be kept successively. The other
Islamic schools held that succeeding days are not obligatory in such a case, and
the person should fast the requite number of days regardless of whether he fasts
them in succession or not.145
IV) ZAKAT
With regard to Zakat there are two points:
ii) Ibadhis treated cattle in the same way as camels. The minimum (nisab) for
zakat in cattle is as for camels;146 on five cows, one sheep; on ten, two sheep;
on fifteen, three sheep; on thirty six, one cow of two to three years (thaniyah);
on forty six, one cow five years old (rubaiyah); on sixty one, one cow six years
old, etc.... As for the Sunni schools, they held that the minimum (nisab) for
cattle is: On thirty cows, a year old calf, on forty, one two year old cow, etc....
The latter opinion is based on a number of Traditions reported from the
Prophet concerning the minimum (nisab) of zakat of cattle.147 Abu Ghanim
asked Abu al-Mu’arrij about the Tradition of Muadh reported by Sunni
authorities in support of their views. His answer was, "The opinion of our
authorities from whom we learned and on whom we depend is that the Sunnah
in the zakat of cattle is like the Sunnah in the zakat of camels, what is taken on
camels is to be taken on cattle, and what is done in the case of camels is to be
done in the case of cattle... As for the Tradition of Muadh, God knows best
about it. If we knew that it was right we would adopt it, but our companions,
Jabir b. Zaid and Abu Ubaidah, did not take what you have mentioned into
account, and they head of it."148
Jitali, attempting to explain the reason for the difference and the Ibadhi proof
for their attitude, said, "They (the Ibadhi authorities) adopt this attitude either
by analogical reasoning, or on the basis of some traditions unknown to us."149
However, certain Sunni collections of Hadith reported Traditions which seem
to be the basis of the (Ibadhi) opinion.150
ii) The second point is concerned with the conduct of the person to whom
zakat should be given. The Ibadhis stipulate that the person should be in the
state of (walayah). Accordingly, zakat must be given only to (awliya); if there
are no poor people among these it must be given to the poor members of the
Ibadhi community, even if they are not in the state of walayah. But if these
also are not available, Ibadhis are then allowed to give their zakat to the weak
poor non-Ibadhi Muslims who could do no harm to the Ibadhis.151
96
II) MARRIAGE
The point of difference here is about the case of the two parties guilty of
unlawful intercourse. Ibadhis held that such a relation constitutes a permanent
impediment to marriage between the two guilty parties. According to Ibn
Khalfun, this doctrine is one of those which is agreed upon by al Ibadhi
authorities. Their predecessors (salaf) in this attitude are the Companions;
Abdullah b. Mas’ud, A’ishah, al-Bara b. Azib, Ali b. Talib, Abu Hurairah, and
Jabir b. Abdullah. The two scholars of Basrah, al-Hassan b. Abi al-Hassan and
Muhammad b. Sirin held the same view.152 This attitude was also maintained
by the 'Twelve" Shites.153 Other Sunni schools held it lawful for the two
parties guilty of unlawful sexual intercourse to marry each other, some with the
condition that they repent and lead an upright life others unconditionally.
In his treatise, Ibn Khalfun presented a detailed account of the question and
the arguments of all parties.154
II) INHERITANCE
With regard to a client (mawla,), all Ibadhi scholars, with the exception of Abu
Nuh al-Dahhan, held that the property of a client who had no relatives was to
be inherited by his people and not by his partron.155 If there were kinsfolk of
the deceased client the estate was to go to them, but if he had no heir
belonging to his tribe, the estate was to go the members of his race present in
his country at the day of his death, males and females receiving equal shares. If
his parents were of different races, some Ibadhi scholars held that his property
should go to his father's people. According to Abu al-Hawari, it should be
divided into three shares, two thirds of his father's people, and one third to his
mother's. The Shaikhs of Jabal Nufusah held that whoever of the client's
people arrived first should take the estate.156 The other Islamic schools held
that if the client had no asabah, his patron who had manumitted him was his
heir; if the patron was not alive, his asabah should inherit the client's property,
and if there were none of the latter to be fond his property should go to the
public treasury (bait al-mal).157
28. Ibn Hajar, Tahdhib al-Tahdhib, III, 68; Lisan, III, 187
29. Al-Qutb, Sharh 'Aqidat al-tawhid, 115
30. Dhahabi,Mizan al-I'tidal, III, 93;al-Khatib al-Baghdadi, Taqrid al-'ilm, editor Y. Eche,
Damascus, 1949, 109; Ibn Khalfun, Ashsbah, Azmi, Studies in early Hadith literature, Beirut,
1968, 66, 67, 77
31. Ibn Sa'd, Tabaqat, VII, I, 31
32. Abu Zakariya', Siyar, Ms. 30ff.
33. Hajji Khalifah, Kashf al-zunun, I, 781
34. It is possible that the two works of Jabir, K. al-Nikah and K. al-Salat, included in the Ms.
of al-Diwan al-ma'rud, form part of Diwan Jabir mentioned here.
35. Wisyani, Siyar, 120
36. Bid., 129
37. Abu Ubaidah, Masa'il, 23-24
38. id., 24,Jitali, Sharh al-Nuniyah, I, 47
39. Loc. cit
40. Loc. cit
41. Abu Ubaidah, op. cit., 24
42. Al-Diwan al-ma'rud: K. abwab al-buyu', Ms. 5
43. Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf, Siyar, Lithog. Tunis, 1321 H., 91
44. Wisyani, Siyar, 120
45. Barradi, Jawahir, 220. Shammakhi, Siyar, 444
46. Al-Rabi' b. Habib, Musnad, II, 103-104
47. Ibid., 104, Salimi, Sharh al-Jami al-sahih, editor 'Izzuddin al-Tanukhi, Damascus, 1963,
III, 620-621. Azmi, Studies in early Hadith., 304
48. See for example al-Rabi', Musnad., I, 81, about the question of qunut; and Abu Ghanim,
Mudawwanah., 34, 119, 127
49. Warijlani, Dalil., 35 b.
50. Barradi, Risalah fi al-haqa'iq., Ms. 23
51. Warijlani, al-'Adl wa al-'insaf., Ms.II 85 ff.
52. Ibid., 87-88
53. Cf. My 'Description of New Ibadhi Mss.",Four, Semitic Studies, XV..I 68-69 I, 68-69.
54. Ibid., 68-69
55. Ibid., 65-66,67-68
56. Ibn Midad, Sifat 'Asma' al-'Ulama'., Ms. 28. He states that Suhar al-'Abdi, the teacher of
Abu Ubaidah Muslim, was from Khurasan.
101
57. Abu Ghanim, Mudawwanah, Ms. 26; Ibn Midad, op. cit., 14. Ibadhi sources also mention
a certain Mahmud b. Nasr al-Khurasani who recorded the Ibadhi doctrine from the students of
Abu Ubaidah.
58. Wisyani, Siyar, 3; Shammakhi, Siyar, 228
59. I have seen a number of Mss. of the Mudawwanah in Jerba, Baruniyah.; Libya, Zwarah,
the collection of Mustafa al-'Azzabi; and Mzab, Binyizgin, the collection of Muhammad
Babanu. There is another copy in Dar al-Kutub, Cairo, Cf. Cairo Cat.The Ms. I am using for
this study was presented to me by the Omani scholar Muhammad al-Salimi. He also gave me
another copy of the Mudawwanah with the commentary of al-Qutb. He also provided me
with a Ms. of K. al-'istiqamah and Part III of K. Bayan al-shara''.
60 al-Salimi, Abdullah, notes on the Mudawwanah. Ms. I for Qudam see:al -Barki, Mu'jam.,
III, 1052
61.Ibn Sallam, Bad'ul-'Islam., Ms. 47; Ibn Midad., Sifah., 14
61 Sufi, Abu Uthman, Su'alat., Ms. 70.; Ibn Sallam, op. cit., 44
62. Abu Ghanim, Mudawwanah., 87
63 Ibn Midad, Sifah., 29
64. Darjini, Tabaqat., 262-263.; Shammakhi, Siyar, 92, 105
65. Al-Kindi, Bayan al-Shara''., Ms. III,the page related to the question
66. Mudawwanah., 2
68. Wisyani, Siyar., 3.Darjini, Tabaqat., 303. Shammakhi, Siyar., 228
69. Schacht, "Bibliotheque et manscrits Abadites," Rev. Alt., 100 (1956).381, not
8.;Motylinski, "Le manuscrit arabo-berbere de Zougha." 14Cong. Int. Or., 1905, II, 4 section,
68-78.
70. Al-Diwan al-ma'rud., Ms. al-Baruniyah
71. Cf. Schacht, op. cit., 381
72. Wisyani, Siyar, 3
73. Cf. Cairo Cat.
74. For the biography of Qatadah see: al-Dhahabi, Tadhkirah., I, 109
75. 76, 77, 78, 79 Cf. My "Description of New Ibadhi Mss." Jour Semitic Stud., XV, I, 66-69
80. Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz., Nikah al-Shigar., Ms. IV, 69
81. Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz., Nikah al-Shigar., Ms IV 69
82. Ibn Sa'd, Tabaqat., VII 181 Ibn Hazm, Mulakhas., 64.; Warijlani, al-Dalil., 58 b.
83. See above 82-83
84. Jabir b. Zaid, Jawabat., No. 17, 42
85. Ibid., No. 6 18., No. 16, 38
86. Salimi, Hashiyat al-Jami al-sahih., I, 168
102
CHAPTER IV
IBADHI THEOLOGY
Contrary to Ibadhi jurisprudence, Ibadhi theology attracted the attention of
European scholars. their attention was drawn to the study of Ibadhi theology
by Masqueray in his notes on the translation he made of the Siyar of Abu
Zakariya Al-Warijlani 1, and also by A. de C. Motylinski, who introduced a
French translation of the Ibadhi creed of 'Amr b. Jumai to the Fourteenth
Congress of the Orientalists in Algiers in the year 1905 2.
Both scholars, Goldziher and Nalline, noticed and pointed out the similarity of
attitudes and views between Ibadhis and Mu'tazilites on certain matters, and
suggested that the similarity was due to the Mu'tazili influence on Ibadhi
theology3. When discussing some of these points, William Thomson,
correctly, pointed out that they agitated Kharijite circles at a fairly early period,
and that they were not of Mu'tazili origin, and he suggested that they may have
arisen naturally among the Kharijites(this including Ibadhis)4.
The publication of original Ibadhi sources by al-Baruniyah lithographic press
provided new material on the subject and encouraged further contributions, in
the year 1936, a French translation of two chapters from K. al Dalil
wa-'l'burhan of al-Warijlani was made by I.S. Allouche. later, in the year 1949,
Mario Moreno tried to present a clearer account of Ibadhi theology based
mainly on the works of the modern 'Omani scholar 'Abdullah b. Humaid al-
Salimi (d. 1332H.) and other works published by al-Baruniyah5. Six years
ago, A comparative study of the Ibadhi creed of Abu Zakariya al-Jannawani
and its relation to other Sunni reeds accompanied by an Italian translation of
the Aqidah of Abu Zakariya appeared6.
To evaluate the views formed by European scholars on Ibadhi theology,
especially those of Goldziher and Nallino, one should start the study of Ibadhi
theology from the early stage of the movement, and trace the development of
its tenet in order to define and distinguish from the other schisms the stand-
point of the Ibadhi school.
In the following pages, I propose to study the development of Ibadhi theology
from its early stages, giving a clear account of the problems which arose then.
this will be followed by a study of the sub-divisions of the Ibadhi movement
which came about through differences on theological grounds and a general
review of Ibadhi works on theology. Finally, a brief comparative study of
Ibadhi theological views as contrasted with the views of other Islamic schisms
on basic issues will be made.
106
The Qur’an was the fundamental source of Islamic theology7. The Companions
who appointed themselves to teach the Qur’an and its interpretation to the
Muslims may be taken as the first class of Muslim theologians. Their discussion
of the theological problems which were dealt with in the Quern, or arose out of
Quranic expressions, were based mainly on Traditions which they heard from
the Prophet, or reported on an authority remounting to the Prophet.
With regard to Ibadhis, their first Imam and the founder of their school, Jabir
b. Zaid, acquired his views from a large number of the Companions, especially
Ibn Abbas, the Companion from whom the bulk of information on Tafsir was
narrated8. This highly significant fact is an indication of the soundness of the
Ibadhi views concerning theological questions connected with the Qur’an.
Most of these views were recorded in the Ibadhi collection of Hadith, entitled
Musnad al-Rabi b. Habib9.
Another fact is that the Ibadhi movement began as a intellectual movement.
Its activities, which were carried out in secret, enabled its leaders, who were
observing closely and carefully the religious and political development of the
Muslim community, to develop naturally their views on different topics.
The theological problems to appear early in Ibadhi sources can be categorised
into three groups:
i) Problems concerned with God.
ii) Problems concerned with the relation between Man and God.
iii) Problems concerning the relation between man and man.
i) Under the first heading comes the question of tashbih, anthropomorphism,
which arose out of the Quranic expressions applying to God physical
description borrowed from the human body10. This question was later studied
as an item within the principle of Unity (al-Tawhid) in the Ibadhi creed.
However, early Ibadhi austerities reported and maintained the interpretation of
expressions of this nature from the Companions. The following are some
examples of the exegesis reported on such verses:
Qabdah (handful), which figures in the following verse, "The Earth altogether
shall be His 'handful' on the day of Resurrection"11; here, qabdah is explained
as power and rule. Jabir b. Zaid said that Ibn Abbas declared polytheists whose
who thought that the 'handful' (yaqbidu) and outspreads, "12 meaning gives
and forbids. He said also in the Verse of the Shadow, "Thereafter We seize it
to Ourselves, drawing it gently."13 Then Ibn Abbas cited some examples of
qabdah meaning protection and ownership in Arabic14.
Al-yad (hand) is also explained as God's power and rule in verses such as: iii,
73; xlviii, 88; xxxvi, 83, etc.15 The hands of God in surah v, 64 are explained
107
as rizq, sustenance16. In surah xlviii, 10, the hand is interpreted also as reward
and favour from God17. In surah lxvi, 45, the right hand (al-yamin) is
interpreted as power, and in suras: xxxvi, 71, and xxxviii, 75, is explained as
order, and power, and so on18. This method was also applied to similar terms
which figure in the Qur’an, as follows:
a) The eye ('ayn), in suras xx, 39, xi, 37; xxiii, 27; lii, 48; and liv, 14, means
knowledge and protection19.
b) The light (nur) in the surah xxiv, 35, means that He is the Just One ('adl)
of Heavens and Earth, and the Guide of the inhabitants of heavens and
earth20.
c) The face (wajh) of God means GodHimself 21.
d) The leg (al-saq)in surah lxviii, 42, means the great disaster.22 المر الشديد
e) The soul (al-nafs) ascribed to God in surah v, 116, means knowledge23.
f) The coming of God with the angels on the day of resurrection in surah
lxxxix, 22, was explained as the coming of His order24.
g) Allah's sitting on the throne (istiwa' 'ala al-'arsh) means His rule over the
Universe25.
The 'athar which are reported in the Ibadhi collection of traditions show clearly
that anthropomorphism (tashbih) was strongly opposed by the Companions. It
is reported that both Ibn Mas’ud and Abdullah b. Umar were shocked on
hearing the Muslims of Syria saying that God climbed the heaven from Bait al-
Maqdis, and He put His foot on the rock (al-sakhrah)30. It is also believed
that the Jews were behind these anthropomorphic views31. Ibn Mas’ud said,
"Do not ask the people of the Book about anything, for they will never guide
you while they are astray"32.
Under the title, "The sunnah in glorification of God,"33 a large number of
Traditions were reported, all expressing dean thropomorphic views of God.
Among the Companions from whom these Traditions were reported were Umar
b. al-Khattab, Ali b. Abi Talib, Abdullah b. Abbas, Abdullah b. Mas’ud, and
Abdullah b. Umar. Among the followers apart from Jabir b. Zaid the Ibadhi
Imam, there were Mujahid, al-Hasan al-Basri, Said b. Jubair, al-Dahhak and
others.
The method of allegorical interpretation of anthropomorphistic expressions in
the Qur’an was also adopted by the Mu'tazilites. However, it is clear that this
method was based on Traditions of the Prophet and the nature of the Arabic
language, which allowed such interpretations. In many cases other verses from
the Qur’an were cited to counter anthropomorphistic interpretations from
Quranic contexts where the expressions in question were used in clear
unequivocal senses that supported the interpretations Ibadhi theologians
wished to make.
Concerning the questions of God being or not being in a place, i.e. being on the
Throne or coming with the Angels on the Day of Resurrection, etc., Jabir b.
Zaid reported from Ibn Abbas a detailed discussion on the question rejecting all
anthropomorphic forms based on a number of Quranic verses34. Ibn Abbas
concluded his argument with the following statement:
"It (the Qur’an) informed us that there is no place in the high heavens and the
lowest earths vacated by Him. They must not follow parts of the Qur’an
neglecting others, for each proves the correctness of each other. He is sitting on
the throne, is witness over everything and encompasses everything without
formation (takyif), limitation, (tahdid), resemblance (tamthil),
anthropomorphism (tashbih) or imagination (tawhim)"35.
Among the early problems connected with the question of tashbih is God's
friendship towards the Muslims. As this doctrine was concerned with the
conduct of the Muslim who would not deserve God's friendship unless he was a
good Muslim, some Ibadhi scholars held that God's friendship changes
according to the state of the person. Most Ibadhi scholars, however, held that
109
It seems that the opinion of the early Ibadhi scholars on this problem was not
sufficiently clear and determined for there was a conflict of opinion on this
matter between the Ibadhis of Jabal Nufusah and the Ibadhis of Afriqiyah, i.e.
Tunisia and Algeria. The latter held that man is free in acquiring his acts' 60,
while the Nufusis believed in Jabl, i.e. being created with natural disposition to
do what God 'knows' of one's actions61. However, all Ibadhis of North Africa,
apart from this question of jabl and ikhtiyar, acknowledged 'acquisition'
(iktisab). Jitali, in Sharh al-Nuniyah, tried to explain the word jabl in a way
which distinguishes it from the word jabr, which means compulsion and does
not leave any way open for acquisition62. According to Nufusi scholars, no
opinions were reported on this question from the early Ibadhi Imams of Basrah,
or from their students, the 'bearers of learning,' or even from the Rustumid
Imams63. However, the idea of jabl has disappeared from Ibadhi writings of
Nufusah since the time of Abu Sakin 'Amir b. Ali al-Shammakhi, a
contemporary of al-Jitali, who expressed in his 'Aqidah, al-Diyanat, the view
that people 'acquire' and perform their actions and they are not compelled to
them64.
iii) Problems concerning the relation between man and man
The relations between Muslims and non-Muslims was defined in the Qur’an.
The Qur’an mentioned three different groups of people, the Polytheists, the
People of the Book, and hypocrites. As for the two first groups, relations of the
Muslims with each group in terms of war and peace were made clear in the
Qur’an and were observed by the Prophet. The civil wars among Muslims
brought about new problems to the Muslim community. These wars started
when 'Uthman b. Affan was killed by fellow Muslims, and continued between
'Ali the fourth Caliph on one side, and Talhan and al-Zubair on the other, then
between 'Ali and Mu'awiyah, as also between 'Ali and the people of al-Nahr.
During these wars, each group was claiming the justification of fighting the
other on religious terms, each group with its own arguments and proofs.
information about this period is very confused, and a lot of it may have been so
formulated later as to support the claims of each of the conflicting groups.
Ibadhi authorities reported five detergent attitudes held by Companions
concerning the question of Uthman.
a) Those who held that Uthman deserves to be killed by Muslims for his
innovations. The Muslims tried for six years to make him change them, and
keep to the path of his predecessors or resign. When he refused to agree to
them they killed him. His blood was lawful for being unjust and insolent.
They called him tyrant (ja'ir), profligate (fasiq), unjust (zalim), and
infidelingrate' (kafir kufr ni'mah). Among this group were the Companions,
Abdullah b. Mas’ud, Ammar b Yasir, Abu Dharr al-Ghifari, Abd al-Rahman b.
113
Awf, Amr b. Muhammad b. Maslamah, and Zaid b. Thabit, and most of the
Ansar.
b) Those who held that the question of civil war (fitnah) among the
Companions was a matter of personal judgement (ijtihad) he who was correct
is to be rewarded, and he who was wrong is to be excused. Some even say that
both sides were correct. This latter opinion is ascribed to Ali b. Abi Talib.
c) Those who say that Uthman had repented for his innovations, and that he
was killed after he had repented, therefore his opponents were wrong. This was
the opinion of the Companions Talhah, al-Zubair and A'ishah.
d) Those who reserved their opinion on the civil war and refused to take part
in it and they were in doubt about the whole situation. Among these were Sa'd
b. Abi Waqqas, Abdullah b. Umar, Muhammad b. Maslamah and others.
e) Finally, the attitude of Mu'awiyah and Amr b. al-As who held that
Uthman was right all the way and claimed revenge for his death65.
However, the civil wars left their stamp on Islamic history up to our own time.
The political, intellectual, and religious life of the Muslims was coloured with
those early opinions formed by different groups and authorities. Apart from
Ali's party which developed as the Shiite school, and the supporters of
Mu'awiyah, there was the third party which refused the leadership of both men
and was massacred by both men - at al-Nahrawan by Ali, and afterwards at a
al-Nukhailah by Mu'awiyah. They were in Ali's Army but when he accepted
arbitration they broke away from him for leaving the judgement of the Qur’an
to the judgement of men. As their previous Imam Ali b. Abi Talib gave up his
right to the Imamate by accepting arbitration, they decided to elect a new
Imam, and for the first time a non-Qurashite leader was elected as Amir al-
mu'minin. The Azdi Companion Abdullah b. Wahb al-Rasibi was elected and
he led his men in the battle against Ali b. Abi Talib, and the whole Army of
Abdullah b. Wahb consisting of more than two thousand pious Muslims (ahl
salat wa siyam) was killed by Ali, in that battle of al-Nahrawan.
This group was known by four different names: al-Muhakkimah, Ahl al-Nahr,
al-Haruriyah, and al-Khawarij. The first name was derived from their motto,
"La hukma illa lillah." And or the two second names, al-Haruriyah is derived
from the name of a place, Harura', where some of them gathered near Kufah,
and other name, Ahl al-Nahr, is derived from the name of the place of the
battlefield, al-Nahrawan. With regard to the last name Khawarij, it is
suggested that the name was derived from the expression Kharaja (came out), -
either out from the community as their opponents like to interpret the name, or
out of their homes as emigrants to God, as their sympathisers explain the name
on the basis of a Qur’anic verse. It is also suggested that this name was used
114
for this group by their opponents as a reference to the first work of a well-
known Tradition of the Prophet which describes a group of people which will
emerge from the Muslim community, "From the descendants of this man there
will arise (sayakhruju) people who fluently read the Book of Allah, but it will
not pass beyond their throats. They will pass through religion as an arrow
passes through a hunted animal. Methinks, said the narrator, he added: If I
find them, I shall kill them, as Thamud were killed"66.
This political situation gave rise to several questions on which conflicting
opinions appeared. Among these questions was the attitude of the Muslims
towards tyranny or unjust rulers, i.e. those rulers who do not follow the
shari’ah. Kharijites in general held that their opponents were polytheists
(mushrikum), then they differed regarding the principle of religious
dissimulation. (taqiyah). The Azariqah, followers of Nafii b. al-Azraq held that
khuruj or hijrah to their camp is an obligatory duty, and regarded the home of
their opponents as dar al-harb, the land of war.
On the other hand, Ibadhis refused to regard the people of the Qiblah
(Muslims) as polytheists, they called them (muwahhidun) 'monotheists", or
'infidels-ingrate', kuffar alni'mah, and held it lawful to live among them on
terms of mutual tolerance67. This doctrine was clearly expressed by Abdullah
b. Ibad, and for it he was opposed by the Kharijite leaders68. Abdullah b. Ibad
declared Nafii al-Azraq a polytheist (mushrik) for killing Muslim women and
children and for taking their property as spoils69. Jabir b. Zaid also adopted
the same attitude as Abdullah b. Ibad, and used to argue with the Kharijites
and refute their views concerning their attitude towards their Muslim
opponents70. It is reported that Jabir b. Zaid was informed that Zaid b. al-
A’sham, who was believed to be a good Muslim, regarded the Muslim
opponents as polytheists. Jabir sent for him and asked his opinion on the
sacrificial animals (hady) sacrificed by the Muslim opponents. His reply was, I
kill them and cut their livers and humps, they have no sacrifices (la hadya
lahum)." The sense of this curt statement is that Zaid b. al-A’sham refused to
regard sacrificial animals dedicated by the Muslim opponents of the Khawarij
as consecrated (to Allah), since he considered these men to be polytheists, and
in consequence he regarded them as lawful to be slaughtered should they fall
into his possession, freely, since they were not, in his eyes, Allah's consecrated
property. The livers and humps are the choice parts of camel meat. So Jabir
renounced him71.
During their history, Ibadhis never broke this principle; they never killed
women or children of their opponents or killed the injured or followed a routed
enemy of them, nor did they take their property for spoils72. One of the well
known examples of this attitude is to be found in the celebrated action of Abu
115
al-Rabi refused to agree with them pointing out that such views were held only
by ignorant people and not by devout learned men87. The same attitude was
reported from his ancestor Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah. it is reported
that he was told that Muqatil says that God created Adam in His shape. Abu
Ubaidah said, "Muqatil lied," but he did not regard him as a polytheist88.
The other question regarding Muslim sinners who commit grave sins, was
concerned with the punishment for those sinners on the Last Day. Ibadhis
maintained that the committer of grave sins has to repent to enjoy the right of
intercession, and to escape the punishment for persistence in grave sins which is
eternal Hell.89 If the sin was connected with the obligations to God,
repentance along is enough, but if it affects rights of other people, the sinner
should give back the rights of those people in order to complete his
repentance90.
This attitude was, in fact, the basis of the Ibadhi doctrine of al-wad wa al-wa'id,
promise and threat, which was directed against the Murji'ites who maintained
that the professing of Islam (shahadat) is all that is required from the faithful in
order to enter Paradise. The Traditions reported from the Prophet defined the
Murji'ites as those who say that faith is word only without works91. It is
reported that Jabir b. Zaid said, "The Murji'ites are the Jews of the people of
the Qiblah, because they promise the sinners Paradise and say, 'The Hell-fire
shall not touch us save for a number of days,' as Jews and Christians have
said"92.
The system of walayah and bara'ah was constructed at an early stage of the
Ibadhi movement to regulate the relations between the believers and the
sinners, so that Muslims will always be reminded that only practising Muslims
deserve love and harmony on account of their full practice of Islamic teachings,
and that those who neglect heir religious duties and persist in sinning should be
disapproved and ostracised until they repent.
The doctrine of al-walayah wa al-bara'ah was one of the main topics of the
Ibadhi creed. Its rulers were laid down during the time of Jabir b. Zaid the
founder of the Ibadhi movement. Apart from the numerous Qur’anic verses on
which this doctrine was based, there is also a large number of traditions which
were considered as directions for the system. According to al-rabii b. Habib,
any Tradition which speaks of a person with the expression, "He is not of us" (
) ليييس منييا, means that the person is to be considered in the state of
(bara'ah)93.
the doctrine of al-walayah wa al-bara'ah is discussed in detail in a special
chapter in this work94. It is mentioned here only to point out that it was one
of the early doctrines which appeared in Ibadhi theology.
118
THE QUR’AN:
Among the main questions on which opinion differed so much in Islamic
theology in general are the questions of creation of the Qur’an, and the work of
God. Reports on the early state of Ibadhi theology show that this problem was
discussed in a limited way. In fact, the only piece of information on this matter
was concerned with the question of adding to the Qur’an or omitting from it.
Jabir b. Zaid said, "Ibn Abbas was asked about the Qur’an whether anything
could be added to, or omitted from it? He said "The Prophet said, 'God curses
him who adds to the Qur’an.'" Then he said, "He who disbelieves in one letter
disbelieves in the whole Qur’an"95. Jabir also reported that 'Uqbah b. Amir al-
Juhani said, "The Prophet led us at the dawn prayer; he recited the two
chapters (of Daybreak and Men) (al-Mua'awwadhatayn), then he said, 'O
Uqbah, these two suras are the best of the suras of the Qur’an, the book of
Psalms, the Bible, and the Torah.'" 'Uqbah said, "Some people say that they are
not part of the Qur’an - they lied and sinned96.
It is further reported that Ibn 'Abbas said, "if anyone adds to the Qur’an or
omits from it, he will be infidel to Muslims for that reason." He further
described the Qur’an as God's word and proof for His worshippers, and the
guide (imam) of His servants which will be the witness against them on the
Day of Judgement97.
There was no mention of the question of Qur’an being created or eternal. It
was described by Ibn 'Abbas as the speech of God (kalam), proof (hujjah) and
guide (imam).
The question of adding or omitting from the Qur’an was dealt with to establish
the Ibadhi attitude, as opposed to the Kharijite branch of al-Maymuniyah,
followers of Maymun b. Imran, who maintained that the chapter containing the
story of Joseph is not from the Qur’an, and denied that a love story could be a
part of the Holy Book98. As for the two chapters of al-Falaq and al-Nas, it is
also reported that the celebrated Companion Abdullah b. Mas’ud refused for
some time to include them in his text of the Qur’an, then afterwards he did
include them99. On the other hand, it is reported that Ubaiy b. Kaab
maintained that the dua recited after 'witr' prayer is a part of the Qur’an100. It
is possible that some people, being influenced by the attitude of Ibn Mas’ud
maintained that the two last chapters of the Qur’an were just an invocation
(dua). Ibadhi authorities, in order to avoid any confusion that may be caused
by the views ascribed to both Ibn Mas’ud and Ubaiy b. Kaab, set forth those
Traditions reported from Ibn Abbas and Uqbah b. Amir to settle the matter.
As for the question of the creation of the Qur’an, it is not known whether al-
Rabi b. Habib or Wail b. Aiyub, his successor, has formed any decision about
119
the people of Hadramawt, we are in between, neither with these nor with the
other."106 However, all these views were regarded as the result of personal
opinion which allows disagreement and does not affect the faith.107
As for the Ibadhis of North Africa, they were all of one single opinion holding
that the Qur’an is created. The earliest document dealing with this question is
the treatise composed by the Rustumid Imam, Abu al-Yaqzan Muhammad b.
Aflah (d. 281 H.), in which he discussed the question in detail, presenting
strong argumentation to support the doctrine of the creation of the Qur’an.108
The subsequent works by authors from North Africa adopted the same attitude
as Imam Muhammad b. Aflah. How did it happen that the Ibadhis of North
Africa adopted one clear view on this question, while the Ibadhis of the 'East'
were so confused about it? Was it because of the influence of the Mu'tazilites,
as already suggested by some European scholars, and if so, why was this
influence so effective in north Africa and less effective in the 'East'? In support
of the view held by Nallino that the Ibadhis of North Africa were influenced by
the Mu'tazilites with regard to the doctrine of the creation of the Qur’an: It is
possible that this influence found its way to Ibadhi theology in north Africa
through Muhammad b. Aflah, the Rustumid Iman, who composed the first
work on the question. It is likely that he was convinced of this doctrine whole
imprisoned for some time in Baghdad with one of the Abbasid Caliphs.109
Since no one of the Ibadhi Imams of North Africa prior to him had discussed
the question, Abu al-Yaqzan was able to introduce his own opinion for the first
time. Being the Imam of the whole Ibadhi state of North Africa, his followers
unanimously accepted his view.
On the other hand, it is possible that the doctrine of the creation of the Qur’an
was developed naturally and independently by Ibadhi scholars on the basis of
their view of God and His attributes. However, the fact remains that the
Ibadhis in their early stage did not deal with this question from this approach,
and when they did, the Mu'tazilite view of the creation of the Qur’an had
already spread widely among them.
THE IMAMATE:
Among the subjects which were settled in the early stage of Ibadhi theology is
that of the Imamate. The Traditions reported by Jabir b. Zaid on this issue are
very few. The rule of the Qurashites is mentioned in one of them as follows:
"This affair, meaning the rule, will continue still yet in Quraish as long as two
of them remain." (He pointed with his fingers). "But woe upon those who are
infatuated with kingship (mulk)."110 However, this Tradition id not state that
the Qurashites have special right to the Imamate. On the other hand, there is a
121
from the Prophets Adam, Nuh, Ibrahim, Musa and Isa, but all of them will
excuse themselves because ashamed of sins they have committed, and they will
all recommend them to turn to the Prophet Muhammad for intercession, since
God has forgiven his former and latter sins.118 The gate of paradise will be
opened for him, and all the faithful will enter paradise except those who were
threatened hell-Fire by the Qur’an." The statement following this Tradition
shows that intercession is granted to Adam for his children, to each of the
Prophets for his community (ummah), and for the faithful; so that the martyr
will intercede for seventy of his kin if they were faithful and upright.119
c) The other article is the constriction and punishment of the tomb (adhab
al-qabr). A number of Traditions reported by Jabir b. Zaid refer to the
punishment of the tomb.120 Abu Ubaidah after narrating one of these
Traditions commented, "Jabir was among those who acknowledged the
punishment of the tomb."121 This attitude was accepted by the Ibadhis in
general, but was denied by some Ibadhi scholars on the basis of reasoning.122
We also may mention here the interrogation of the dead by the two Angels,
Munkar and Nakir, concerning which a Traditions is narrated by Jabir b.
Zaid.123
those views in Ibadhi theology were of Mu'tazili origin, but the question which
they had not answered yet was when and where this influence made itself
felt.126
Although William Thomson has suggested a new line of discussion of this
question, pointing out the possibility of some of those views having arisen
naturally among the Ibadhis,127 this line of investigation has not been carried
out by later scholars. As it was possible to consult a later number of Ibadhi
sources which were not available before, a clearer view of the development of
Ibadhi theology can now be established, and the nature of its relation to other
Islamic schisms better understood.
It would be difficult to decide about certain views, as to whether they were a
result of natural development within a particular schism, or a result of outside
influence. Most of the early discussions of theological problems by Muslim
theologians were directed in one way or another by the Qur’an and Sunnah of
the Prophet, and by the interpretation of one or other of those sources, and the
degree of reasoning used by those theologians in their interpretation.
One fundamental difference between Ibadhis and Mu'tazilites was that the
latter were well known for using rational methods in theology128 and for their
little consideration of hadith,129 while Ibadhis gave no consideration to
reasoning when an authentic Tradition was reported. As for their foundation,
most of the Ibadhi views were settled considerably earlier than those of the
Mu'tazilites.
Bearing these two facts in mind, only one point of the above mentioned six, can
remain as a possibility of Mu'tazili influence on Ibadhi theology, i.e. the
creation of the Qur’an. All other points were settled by Ibadhi authorities at an
early stage. In fact, they were settled by the Companions on the basis of
Traditions remounting to the Prophet. The role of Ibadhi authorities was only
in narrating those views and adopting them.
It has already been mentioned that a larger number of Traditions recorded in
the Ibadhi collection of Hadith stated clearly the impossibility of the vision of
God on the Last day, and rejected all forms of anthropomorphism. As for the
attributes of God not being additional, this attitude was taken in order to
assure the Unity of God which is fundamental to the Islamic faith.
With regard to the two questions concerning the eternity of punishment for
Muslims persistent in major sin, and the relation of intercession and God's
forgiveness of those who have committed major sin, these questions were also
dealt with by Jabir b. Zaid, the first Imam of the Ibadhi school, on the basis of
Qur’anic verses and Traditions of the Prophet.
124
The question arose from the following verse: "If you avoid the heinous sins that
are forbidden to you, We will acquit you of your evil deeds."131 According to
Ibn Abbas, committing what is forbidden in the Qur’an is a major sin, and
committing what is forbidden by the Sunnah is minor sin. Forgiveness
mentioned in the above verse is concerned only with (saiyi'at) minor sins, so all
major sins remain as giving a cause for 'threat', (waid).132
There are other verses concerning this question:
i) "Surely God forgives sins altogether...."133
ii) "God forgives not that aught should be with Him associated; less than
that he forgives to whosoever He will."134
iii) "If you avoid the heinous sins that are forbidden to you, We will acquit
you of your evil deeds."135
iv) "And who so rebels against God and His Messenger, for him there awaits
the Fire of Gehannam; therein they shall dwell forever."136
In the first verse God did not stipulate any condition for forgiveness, and in
verse iv He did not stipulate any condition for the abiding punishment for
those who rebel against Him and His Messenger, so both verses provide a
general statement on the question. But, in verse ii, and in verse iii, he imposed
repentance as a condition for His forgiveness, and he also said, "Yet I am All-
forgiving to him who repents."137
The difference of opinion over this problem arose with regard to the Will of
God concerning forgiveness of sins lesser than polytheism (shirk). The opinion
of Jabir b. Zaid was that "God has told us about His will regarding forgiveness.
he said that He wills to forgive for repentance: 'Yet I am All-forgiving to him
who repents.'"138 As the Qur’an states that those who rebel against God and
His Messenger shall dwell forever in hell-Fire, there is no reason why they
should not do so, unless they repent, as is explained above. For repentance only
can save them from eternal Hell-Fire.
However, the Mu'tazilites adopted the same view and they were known for it
by the title (ahl al-wad wa al-waid).
With regard to 'intercession' (shafa'ah), Jabir b. Zaid reported a number of
Traditions from the Prophet concerning the people who deserve intercession.
Jabir stated clearly that intercession is not for sinners who had not repented
before death.139
As for the 'creation' of the Qur’an, Ibadhis, as has already been explained, held
three different opinions, one of them being that the Qur’an is created. They
regarded this problem as one of those on which they can differ, out of personal
125
judgement. Therefore, it is not one of the basic dogmas on which they should
take a specific view as is the case with the Mu'tazilites. The possibility of
Mu'tazili influence in this matter has already been mentioned. It appeared that
this possibility cannot be denied, since the Ibadhis had not discussed the
question from this angle before it was raised by the Mu'tazilites.
Although the Ibadhis and Mu'tazilites held the same views on those doctrines
mentioned above, the fact remains that the Ibadhis formed their views on those
questions at an earlier stage, and they were based on Traditions reported from
the Prophet, or on opinions of some of the Companions regarding the tafsir of
certain Qura'nic verses which dealt with some of those doctrines.
On the other hand, the Ibadhis opposed strongly some basic views of the
Mu'tazilites, i.e. on Divine decree, the Divine will, and the position between
two positions.
With regard to the first two views, concerning the Divine will and Divine
decree, Ibadhis held that God is the creator of man and his actions, and man
commits his action. As for the Divine will, Ibadhis held that everything which
happens in this world, be it good or bad, is willed by God. Both views were
adopted by the Ash'arites.
The Mu'tazilites evolved the doctrine of the position between two positions (al-
manzilah baina al-manzilatain) for the state between faith (iman) and
polytheism (shirk). They refused to regard the major sinner a believer (mu'min)
as the Murji'ites did, and also refused to regard him 'infidel-ingrate' and
regarded him as fasiq (evil doer) in a position between two positions, meaning
that he is neither a believer nor an infidel. Ibadhis distinguished their attitude
regarding this matter by the two following principles:
1) The position between two positions implies the position of hypocrisy
between faith and polytheism. This attitude was in opposition to the Murji'ites
who refused to regard the major sinner as anything other than a believer; and
against the Kharijites who regarded all those who commit major sins as
polytheists.
2) There is no position between two positions; meaning that there is no
position between faith (iman) and infidelity (kufr). To them, those who do not
fulfil the teachings of the religion are 'infidels-ingrate' (kuffar al-ni'am). This
attitude was directed against the Mu'tazili view on this matter. For Ibadhis,
the terms, fisq, nifaq and kufr al-ni’mah are all the same, and they mean
hypocrisy. he who fills this category is neither a believer, nor a polytheist, but
an 'infidel-ingrate', or a hypocrite like the Hypocrites of the time of the
Prophet.
126
any more.145
Another event of a similar nature took place during this stage. It occurred
when al-Harith b. Talid, the Ibadhi Imam of Tripoli, and his Qadi Abd al-
Jabbar b. Qais al-Muradi were found dead with the sword of each one thrust
into the body of the other, no-one knowing whether they killed each other, and
in this case, who was wrong. The question was whether they should remain in
the state of (walayah) or be transferred to the states of reservation (wuquf), or
(baraah).146 Conflicting opinions resulted on the matter among the Ibadhis of
North Africa, and the case was presented to Abu Ubaidah in Basrah for a
decision.147
Another question reported to have arisen in the course of the argument within
the Ibadhi community was the question of the 'proof' (al-hujjah). The
argument was about a hypothetical case of a Christian who had not heard of the
Prophet of Islam, and who had converted a Magian to Christianity. Some
Ibadhis youths came to Abu Ubaidah with the strange view that the Christian
is a Muslim because he had not yet heard of the Prophet Muhammad, and the
Magian is an infidel despite his acceptance of Christianity. Abu Ubaidah
refuted their views and disassociated himself from them.148 This view was
taken over afterwards by the Husayniyah.149
After the death of Abu Ubaidah there was a chance of conflict and difference of
opinion. The Ibadhi movement lost with his death a strong leadership which
maintained the unity of the movement and provided final decisions on the
problems which arose. The movement expanded, and al-Rabi b. Habib, who
succeeded Abu Ubaidah as its religious leader, failed to gain support and
acceptance from all his contemporaries. It was during this period that a
number of Ibadhi splinter groups started to appear.
First, we will deal with the original movement or the mainstream of the Ibadhi
school which was known as al-Wahbiyah. After presenting their basic views,
the divergence between the Ibadhi groups and its nature will be readily
understood.
1. AL-WAHBIYAH
The mainstream of the Ibadhi movement in North Africa was distinguished
by the name al-Wahbiyah. There are different opinions about the origin of this
name. According to Ibn al-Raqiq, they were named after 'Abd al-Wahhab, the
second Rustumid Imam.150 The same opinion is reported by Ibn al-Saghir
though he denied any knowledge of its origin.151
Al-Qalhati, in his book al-Kashf wa al-Bayan, used the name al-Wahbiyah for
128
the Ibadhis in general and stated that it is so named after Abdullah b. Wahb
al-Rasibi.152 Both modern Ibadhi scholars of North Africa, Muhammad Yusuf
Atfaiyish and Abdullah al-Baruni, adopted the same view and held that
Wahbiyyah is named after Abdullah b. Wahb and not after Abd Al-Wahhab.
Atfaiyish argued that if it was named after Abd Al-Wahhab, the form should
be Wahhabi and not Wahbi.153 But this opinion also is based on the
grammatical rules of Arabic only.
It is worth mentioning here that the name was largely used by Berbers in
North Africa and it is possible that the correct form of the name was altered to
make it easier for the Berber tongue, and it became Wahbiyah instead of the
correct original form 'Wahhabiyah'. The other fact which supports the opinion
that the name Wahbiyah is derived from Abd Al-Wahhab, is that the name did
not appear before the opposition of the Nukkar to the Imamate of Abd Al-
Wahhab, that opposition which split the Ibadhi community of North Africa
into two parties, the followers of Yazid b. Fandin who were called al-Nukkar,
and the followers of Abd al-Wahhab who should have been named after him
"al-Wahhabiyah' then as suggested earlier, the name was changed and became
Wahbiyah.
Wahbiyah represent the mainstream of the Ibadhis of North Africa. They
played the most important part in both the political and intellectual fields and
are the only group which managed to continue to exist until the present day.
In all information about the Ibadhi communities and their activities in the past,
we are indebted to this group and its literature. As this chapter is concerned
mainly with the theological differences between the different Ibadhi groups, it
is useful to include here a translation of the Wahbi aqidah written by Abu
Sakin Amir b. Ali al-Shammakhi (d.592). For more details about the
theological views of Wahbiyah, and their creeds (Aqaid) specialist works are
available for consultation in both French and Italian.154
AL-DIYANAT
(AN IBADHI WAHBI CREED)
by Amir b. Ali al-Shammakhi
Translation
The divergence between Muslims arose from nine basic elements; unity, divine
decree, walayah and baraah, command and prohibition , praise and threat, the
intermediate position, the denial of an intermediate position, names155 and
statutes.
129
1. UNITY:
We hold that there is nothing like Allah in attribute, essence or act. We
hold that Allah is not seen either in this World or in the World to come; "The
eyes attain Him not, but He attains the eyes; He is the All-subtle, the All-
aware."156
We hold that Allah established Himself upon the Throne and over
everything in a fashion not explicable by reason; His establishing Himself is an
attribute of His which continues attributed to Him.
We hold that He is in every place, preserving and omnipotent; that He is
within things, and along with things, comprehending them, causing them to
was and wane, and not through emanation or fixation, and being contained
therein.
We hold that His Names and attributes are His. There is nothing but
Him. Numbering, change and variation are not applicable to Him.
2. JUSTICE:
We hold that Allah is Just. Injustice is not ascribed to Him in judging
or act.
We hold that the people of al-Nahr were right when they disapproved
of Ali in his entrusting the arbitration to two arbitrators, after the decision of
Allah Almighty, "Fight against the party which doth the wrong, until they
come back to the precepts of God."157
We hold that Allah "Wrongs not men anything, but themselves men
wrong."158 The meaning is: He does not call them to account for that which
they have not committed, nor punish them for crimes they have not
committed.
We hold that (His) servants159 commit and perform their actions, and
that they were not forced or obliged to do them.
3. DIVINE DECREE:
We hold that Allah is the Creator of every thing, knowing everything, and
willing every thing.
We hold that decree, whether good or bad, is from Allah.
We hold that Allah is the creator of (His) servants' actions; He is who
originated them and willed them.
130
We hold that Allah is the creator of His Word and revelation, its originator,
its maker, and the revealer of it.
8. NO INTERMEDIATE POSITION:
We hold that there is no intermediate position between faith and disbelief.
We hold that he is an 'Infidel-ingrate' him who maintains that the whole of
faith is monotheism, and all disbelief is polytheism.
We hold that Allah forgives the minor sins of those who avoid major sins, but
He does not forgive major sins except through repentance.
We hold belief in designating as 'infidel-ingrate' the profligate woman who
has sexual intercourse not per vulvam.
We hold belief in designating as 'infidels-ingrate' those who practice
interpretation erring in their interpretation.
We hold that the statutes affecting the Monotheists in their relation with each
other are one and the same, except for (walayah) and designation as Believers,
for only Muslims who fully discharge their religious obligations are entitled to
these.
We hold that the People of the Book; the Jews, the Christians and the
Sabaeans are not hypocrites, but they are Polytheists.
We hold that he who alters the statutes of Allah or His Apostle is a Polytheist.
We hold that he who denies "individual reasoning' ra'y and the Sunnah is an
'infidel-ingrate.'
We hold that Allah's proof to His servants is the Books and Apostles.
We hold that there is no hijrah after the opening up (fat`h) of Mecca.
We hold that gnosis of God cannot be attained through reflecting or
compulsion, and that it can only properly be arrived at through an instructor
and admonisher.
11. AL NUKKAR:
During the time of Abu UbaidahMuslim b. Abi Karimah the seeds of the
splinter Nukkar group were planted. A number of his intellectual students
possessed and developed certain views on theological and juridical problems.
They were Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz, Abu al-Ma’ruf Shua’ib, Abu al-Mu’arrij
Amr b. Muhammad, Hatim b. Mansur, and Abdullah b. Yazid al-Fazari. They
expressed some of their views during the life of Abu Ubaidah, but he refuted
them and expelled them from the majalis.161 It is reported that they recanted
and repented, and were allowed to rejoin the meetings of the Ibadhis and
participate in the activities of the Ibadhi community in Basrah.162 After the
death of Abu Ubaidah, they again asserted their views left to the successor of
Abu Ubaidah, al-Rabi b. Habib to refute their views and denounce them.163
It was these same men who founded the most important Ibadhi group
beside the original and the mainstream of the Ibadhi school, al-Wahbiyah. The
foundation of their movement as a political opposition to the Wahbiyah began
in North Africa, but the intellectual side of the movement was started and
developed by those scholars in Basrah.
This splinter group was know as al-Nukkar (deniers), for their denial of
the Imamate of Abd al-Wahhab b. Abd al-Rahman b. Rustam.164 They were
also known by other names: Nakithah, Nakkathah, Nukkath for the word
( ), to violate, because they violated the oath they made to Abd al-
Wahhab;165 al-Najwiyyah, from the word al-Najwa, secret intrigue, which
133
was known of them when discussing the question of the Imamate after the
death of the first Rustamid Imam and the election of his son Abd al-
Wahhab.166 They were also called Mulhidah, blasphemers, because they
blasphemed regarding the names of Go;167 Yazidiyah, after their theologian
Abdullah b Yazid al-Fazari, or perhaps after their political leader in Tahert,
Yazid b. Fandin;168 Shaghabiyah for the disturbance (shaghab) which they
brought about;169 and by Maslawah, the name of one of the main Berber
tribes of their adherents.170
The Nukkar branch of the Ibadhi school was, in fact, an integrated
movement which tried to be independent of the mother Ibadhi movement.
They developed their own views on theology and followed the opinion of heir
own authorities in jurisprudence. According to Ibadhi historians, Nukkar
followed Abdullah b Abd al-Aziz, Abu al-Mu'arrij, and Hatim b. Mansur in
jurisprudence, and Abdullah b. Yazid al-Fazari in theology.171
Abdullah b. Yazid who laid the theological foundation of this Ibadhi group,
lived in Kufah (2nd - 3rd century H.) According to al-Masu'di, he was a
kharraz, shoemaker, and a specialist in leather-craft, and he was a business
partner of al-Hakam b. Hisham. His followers used to come into his place in
Kufah to learn from him.172 He wrote a number of books on theology. The
following list is ascribed to him by Ibn al-Nadim: K. al-Tawhid, K. al-Radd
ala al-Mu'tazilah, K. al-Radd ala al-Rafidah, K. al-Istila'ah.173
During the search in private collections of Ibadhi Mss. in North Africa, I came
across one of the books ascribed to Abdullah b. Yazid entitled: K. al-
Rudud.174 This book as far as is known, the only extant work of a Nukkarite
theologian, but there is still a great chance of discovering more Mss. of their
literature in Zwarah (Libya) and Jerba.
It has already been mentioned that the Nukkarite leaders started their
movement with opposition to Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah on certain
matters. Among these were; The Muslims who maintain anthropomorphic
views of God were polytheists (mushrikun).175 They also maintained that
God's friendship (walayat Allah) changes according to the state of the person; if
he performs good deeds he will enjoy God's friendship, and if he commits sins
he will lose that state.176 They also held a different opinion on the question of
al-Harith and Abd al-Jabbar and pronounced them to be in a state of
'reservation' (wuquf).177 They were strongly opposed for these views, and
other juridical opinions, by Abu Ubaidah and his successor al-Rabi b. Habib.
On the death of the first Rustamid Imam in Tahert and the election of his son
Abd al-Wahhab as his successor, the political aims of the Nukkar were
revealed, and contacts between the Nukkar of the West (al-Maghrib) and their
134
sympathisers in the 'East' were established. One of the Ibadhi leaders of North
Africa, Abu Qudamah Yazid b. Fandin of Banu Yifrin, a branch of the Berber
tribe of Zanatah, who was also one of the six men among whom the second
Imam of Tahert Abd al-Wahhab was elected, refused to give his oath to the
new Imam unless he agreed to the condition that all his decisions must be with
the approval of a certain group.178 This ultimatum was refused by the rest of
the Ibadhi leaders of North Africa, and Abd al-Wahhab became the second
Imam of the Ibadhi state there. Yazid b. Fandin and his supporters denied the
Imamate of Abd al-Wahhab and some of them made an attempt of his life. As
they failed, they were obliged to oppose him openly for fear that he might
punish them for their abortive attempt.179 After some fighting, the two
parties agreed to write to the Ibadhi scholars of the East about their conflict,
and wait for their reply so as to decide who was wrong.
On their way, the envoys went to Abu al-Ma'ruf Shua’ib who was in Egypt at
that time and told him about the situation in Tahert, then they went to Mecca
where they met al-Rabi b. Habib, Wail b. Aiyub, Abu Ghassan Mukhallad b.
al-Amarrad and others. They presented them with the letters which they had
brought from North Africa, explained the situation to them and returned with
their reply.180
From the reply of the Ibadhi Shaikhs of East, al-Rabi and his colleagues, it
appears that he conflict between the Ibadhis of North Africa was based on two
issues:
i) The conditions laid on the Imam;
ii) The Imamate of a person excelled by others
The decision of al-Rabi and his colleagues on these two points was in favour of
Abd al-Wahhab and his party. It was decided that there must be no condition
laid on the Imam, and that any suitable person could be elected an Imam even
if there were available men of qualities superior to him.182
As for Shua’ib b. al-Mu'arraf, he went to Tahert and joined the rebels who
fought Abd al-Wahhab before the arrival of the reply from the Ibadhi scholars
of the 'East'. However, Yazid b Fandin was killed, his party was defeated, and
Shua’ib headed back to Tripoli where he continued his literary opposition to
Abd al-Wahhab.183 al-Rabi b. Habib and his colleagues, on hearing of the
attitude of Shua’ib and his hostile activities against Imam Abd al-Wahhab,
disavowed him.184 This attitude of al-Rabi made the remnants of Ibn Fandin's
party sympathise with the opponents of al-Rabi among the Ibadhi scholars of
the East of whom were; Shua’ib b. al-Mu'arraf, Abdullah b Abd al-Aziz,
Abdullah b. Yazid and others. This was how the connection between the two
wings of the Nukkarite movement, the eastern and the western took place.
135
The Nukkarite group of North Africa grew larger and formed their own
communities and Azzabah councils.185 By the beginning of the fourth century
H. they tried to establish their own Imamate under the leadership of Abu Yazid
Mukhallad b. Kaidad, of Banu Yifrin, the same Berber tribe of Yazid b. Fandin
the founder of the Nukkarite movement. Between the years 316-336 A.H.
Abu Yazid conquered most of central North Africa, but was defeated and killed
by the Fatimid ruler, al-Mansur b. al-Qasim, in the year 336 A.H.186
The Nukkar spread all over North Africa and found their way into Spain as
well, where they were strong enough to establish their own city states.187
According to Ibn Hazm, the majority of the Kharijites of al-Andalus were of
the Nukkarite branch of the Ibadhis.188
The extant literature of the Nukkar is very limited and cannot therefore cover
all aspects of their views. Hence one is obliged to study their views as
presented by Wahbi Ibadhis. Their views are to be found mainly in two small
works devoted to the subject of the difference between the Muslim groups.
The first work is a small treatise by Abu Amr Uthman b. Khalifah al-Sufi (first
half of VIth century A.H.) entitled: Risalah fi bayan kull firqah189 and
contains a useful account of the views of the different Muslim groups. The
other work is a poem (urjuzah) of 111 verses, composed by Shaikh Salih b.
Ibrahim b. Abi Salih al-Musabi,190 on the same subject as the treatise of Abu
Amr. Accounts of Nukkar views are also given in the theological and historical
works of the Ibadhis of North Africa.
Abu Ya’qub al-Warijlani gave the following account of al-Nukkar; "In all
schools (madhahib) there is no one who is nearer to us, and at the same time
more remote, than they are out of malice, haughtiness, ignorance and
petulance."191 Abu Amr Uthman b. Khalifah described them as follows;
"They are a group which is very far from the truth (al-haqq), of a doubtful
nature, and noxious views."192
However, Wahbi Ibadhis regarded the Nukkar as 'infidels-ingrate', kuffar
ni’mah, and the relation between the two parties was of a hostile nature. The
following are the beliefs of the Nukkar on which they differ from Wahbi
Ibadhis:
1) The Names of Allah are created.
2) The 'proof' of God is not compulsory.
3) God's friendship towards the Muslims is mutable.
4) Regarding the question of al-Harith and Abd al-Jabbar their decision is of
'reservation' (wuquf).
5) They took the position of 'reservation' in regard to all children (minors).
136
III KHALAFIYAH
Khalafiyah, followers of Khalaf b. al-Samh, grandson of Abu al-Khattab Abd
al-A'la al-Ma'afiri, first Imam of the Ibadhi state of North Africa.194 Al-Samh,
the father of Khalaf, was the wazir of Abd al-Wahhab b. Abd Al-Rahman b.
Rustam. At the request of the people of Jabal Nufusah Abd al-Wahhab
appointed him governor of the Jabal.195 After the death of his father, Khalaf
tried to establish an independent Imamate in Jabal Nufusah and the
surrounding areas.196 His view was that the distance between the Jabal and
the Capital of the Imamate in Tahert was too far, and divided by large areas
ruled by Aghlabids, which made the administration ineffective.197
According to Abu Amr Uthman b. Khalifah, this was the only point of
difference between the Khalafiyah and Wahbi Ibadhis, i.e. the Khalafiyah held
that every area or territory (hawzah) should have an independent Imam and
other Imams should not interfere with its affairs.198 Khalaf started his
movement during the last years of the Imamate of Abd al-Wahhab (end of the
2nd century A.H.) he ruled the Eastern part of the Ibadhi territory between
Jadu and Tripoli, and gained the support of both banu Yifrin and
Zawaghah.199 He fought two major battles against the Governor of the Jabal,
Abu Ubaidah Abd al-Hamid al-Jannawani, the last of which took place in the
year 221 A.H./835 A.D.200 He also fought the successor of Abu Ubaidah, al-
Abbas b. Aiyub.201 After his death, his followers continued their opposition to
the Governor of the Jabal and the Imamate of Tahert until the powerful leader
of Nufusah, Abu Mansur Ilyas defeated them and forced them to flee to Jerba
Island where he surrounded their forces and captured their leader al-Taiyib b.
Khalaf.202 It is reported that al-Taiyib repented and spent the rest of his life
in the Jabal.203
A minority of the followers of Khalaf held to their views while yet living with
other groups of Nukkarites and Husainiyah in the Eastern part of Jabal
Nufusah in Yifrin, Babal, Takbal, and Kikklah204 up to the time of Abu
Yahya Zakariya b. Ibrahim al-Baruni, (second half of 5th century A.H.) who
gained them back for the Wahbi school.205
IV AL-NAFFATHIYAH
The other splinter group which appeared for reasons of a political nature was al-
Naffathiyah, followers of Naffath,206 Faraj b. Nasr. They were also called al-
Kitmaniyah.207
Naffath was of Nufusi origin. he studied in Tahert under the Rustamid Imams
and other Ibadhi scholars of Tahert.208 A contemporary student of his, was
Sa'd b. Abi Yunus, son of the governor of Qantrarah.209 They went together
138
to Tahert for studies. After the death of Abu Yunus, his son Sa'd decided to
return to Qantrarah and Naffath also returned with him.210 As Naffath had
attained a high standard of knowledge, he expected that Imam Aflah would
appoint him governor of Qantrarah, the post which was vacated through the
death of Abu Yunus. Instead, Aflah appointed Sa'd in the place of his father.
Ibadhi historians suggest that this was the reason which made Naffath bear
hatred towards Imam Aflah, and begin propagating accusations against
him.211
The correspondence of Aflah with his governors concerning the affair of Naffath
shows that he possessed views which were regarded as heresies (bida). He was
described as an ignorant youth of no experience. One of his heresies (bida) was
referred to in one of the letters of Imam Aflah. In his last letter to Naffath,
Aflah accused him of being one of those who believed that the rulers (ummal)
of the Rustamid state who were in the 'stage of secrecy' (kitman) were no more
than bishops (asaqifah), and they were not to be obeyed, for they had no
administrative power.212
The following is the account of his views as stated by Abu Amr al-Sufi;
1) Allah is Everlasting Time (al-Dahr al-Daim). When he was asked what
that meant, he replied; I found that in the 'book' (al-Daftar).
2) The Khutbah, sermon, at the Friday prayer is an innovation (bidah).
3) The Imam who cannot protect his subjects from the oppression of tyrants
has no right to exact zakat from them because he is weak and unable to fight
and defend them. It seems that this was directed against Imam Aflah. It is
reported that Naffath said, "To pay zakat to Aflah is like paying it to Nabar the
king of the Sudan.'213 Among his other censures against Aflah, Naffath
mentioned that Aflah had become fond of hunting and had neglected looking
after the interests of Muslims; appointed his son to the Imamate while he was
still living; and used rulers 'ummal' for collecting zakat, although it was not the
custom of the Apostle of God. Naffath also claimed that Aflah embellished his
physical appearance; his face was one cubit (dhira),214 his turban was one
dhira, and his beard was one dhira.
With regard to the legal opinions held by Naffath, three were considered false
by Wahbi Ibadhis:
i) Concerning heritage, he held that the full brother's son was more entitled
to inherit than the half-brother on the father's side.214
ii) It is not lawful for the owner of a property of value to sell it through
necessity of hunger, for he who owns anything of value cannot be in a state of
necessity (idhtirar).
139
view. On the other hand, there is strong evidence that Ibn al-Husain came
from Tripoli, Libya, for his followers were no Ibadhi groups in Syria at any
time. The earliest Ibadhi source which mentioned Ibn al-Husain is the book of
Ibn Sallam. When speaking about the Ibadhi scholars of the West (al-
Maghrib) Ibn Sallam said, "And in the city of Tripoli are Ammar and his
brother al-Hasan b. Ahmad b. al-Husain al-Atrabulsi b. Abi Ziyad. I met him
in Ajdabia, after the year 260 A.H. on his way back from the Hajj." he further
added, "Ibn al-Husain Ahmad and his party and companions adopted analogy
(qiyas)."221 In this quotation it is clear that Ibn al-Husain was of the Ibadhi
scholars of Tripoli - Libya, and that he lived to the end of the third century
A.H.
According to Shammakhi, Ahmad b. al-Husain and Ibn Umarah, both adopted
analogy (qiyas) and followed Isa b. Umair in theology and Ibn Ulaiyah in
jurisprudence.222 Shammakhi also reported that he saw a number of books
written by Ibn al-Hussain, he added that the best of them are K. al-Maqalat on
theology, and K. al-Mukhtasar on jurisprudence.223 Unfortunately neither of
these two books is extant today. The latest author to mention their existence is
al-Shammakhi in the above quotation. It is reported that the books of Ibn al-
Husain were extant in Warijlan in the beginning of the fourth century
A.H.224 Among the Ibadhi authors of Nufusah who quoted from K. al-
Maqalat is Abu Tahir Ismail b. Musa al-Jitali, in his book Qawaid al-Islam.225
One of the early Ibadhi scholars is reported to have said, "if it had not been for
Amrus b. Fath and Aflah b. Abd al-Wahhab who refuted the views of Naffath
b. Nasr and Ahmad b. al-Husain, they would have won the people of the 'West
(al-Maghrib) to their schools."226
Most of the sources which dealt with the subject speak about al-Husainiyah and
al-Umairiyah together. Ibn al-Saghir al-Maliki regarded al-Husainiyah as a
continuation of al-Umairiyah, the followers of Isa b. Umar.227 This view is
also confirmed by Abu Amr Uthman b. Khalifah al-Sufi, who presented the
views of the two groups together,228 and by al-Shammakhi, who stated that
Ibn al-Husain adopted the theological views of Bin Umar.229 According to
Abu Zakariya, Umairiyah was an independent schism from the beginning, and
has no connection with the Ibadhi school, though they claim to be Ibadhis.230
he also stated that they ascribed most of their legal opinions to Abdullah b.
Mas’ud, the Companion of the Prophet.231 As for Isa b. Umair himself, not
much is known about him. Shammakhi mentioned that his disagreement with
the Ibadhi Shaikhs took place during the time of Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi
Karimah at the same time as Abdullah b. Yazid.232
The following are the views on which these two groups differed from the
original Ibadhi movement.233
141
shariah) is lawful.
The Husainiyah group were to be found in the Eastern part of Jabal Nufusah,
then they were won back to Wahbi school by Abu Yahya Zakariya b. Ibrahim
al-Baruni.234
VII AL-SAKKAKIYAH
VII AL-FARTHIYAH
Like the Sakkakiyah, the disagreement between this present group and the
Wahbi school is mainly on legal points. It was founded by Abu Sulaiman
Ya’qub b. Muhammad b. Aflah, son of the Ibadhi Imam of Tahert. he lived in
Warijlan with his father. His father used to warn the Ibadhis against his son
and told them that he read the books of Ahmad b. al-Husain.239
After the death of his father, Abu Sulaiman found the way to deliver legal
opinions, and formulated certain points in which he disagreed with the Ibadhi
school.240
1) Dung (farth) is unclean (najais), the food which is cooked with intestines
143
containing (farth) is unclean. It is because of this opinion the group got its
name Farthiyah.
2) Blood in the veins of the slaughtered animal is unclean, even after
washing the blood of slaughtering part of the neck to which throat the butcher
applies his knife (madhbah), the same is the case with the blood of the entrails.
3) The seat of the menstruating woman, and of men and women in the state
of major ritual impurity, is unclean.
4) Eating the meat of the embryo (janin) of a slaughtered animal is
forbidden.
5) Zakat is not to be paid except to relatives.
This group was also strongly opposed by the Wahbi scholars. its founder died
after his followers had built mosques in Warijlan and Tala.241 However, by
the end of the sixth century A.H. the group had vanished completely.242
From the previous study it appears that the most important Ibadhi group
besides the Wahbiyah is al-Nukkar. All other groups did not last long, while
the Nukkar remained in existence up to the beginning of this century in Jerba
Island, and Zwarah in Libya.
The historical relation between the two groups was one of hatred and enmity,
wars even occurring between them, though sometimes they tried to live
together in peace.
Those were Ibadhi groups recognised by Ibadhi authors, but non Ibadhi sources
mention some other groups243 which were not known to the early Ibadhi
sources on North Africa. It is likely that those groups were founded at the
early stage of the movement in the 'East' and also disappeared early.
of Abu Khazr Yaghla b. Zaltaf (d.380 H.) who composed his book known as K.
Abu Khazr Yaghla b. Zaltaf,256 in reply to questions sent to him from some
Ibadhi scholars, after Abu Khazr had settled in Egypt.257
A contemporary and student of Abu Hazm, Abu Nuh Said b. Zanghil also
made contributions in this field. His book is known in Ibadhi sources as K.
Said b. Zanghil. This book is still lost,258 but from the citations by al-Barradi
in his commentary on the poem o Abu Bakr Ahmad b. al-Nazr, Shifau al-haim
fi sharhi badi al-Daaim, it appears that Ibn Zanghil's book dealt with the
central theological problems such as "What must not remain unknown of the
faith" ميا ل يسيع جهله مين الديينThe 'Vision', 'Capacity', the 'creation' of the
Qur’an, the speech of God,' etc.259 Both scholars, Abu Khazr and Abu Nuh,
took an active part in the last attempt at reviving the Ibadhi Imamate in North
Africa.260
In later periods further contributions to this field were made. A great attention
was paid to speculative theology, and a remarkable number of important works
was written. This was largely due to the instigation of the Ibadhi scholar Abu
Muhammad Abdullah b. Muhammad b. Bakr (d. 440 H.) originally from
Farsattah in Jabal Nufusah. he moved to Ajillu in southern Algeria and formed
the Halqah and Azzabah councils.261 He used to encourage his students to
study theology. Although there are no complete works of theology ascribed to
him, some of his views were included in K. al-Tuhaf by his student Sulaiman b.
Yakhalaf. Abu al-Rabi Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf started teaching theology in Jerba
where he was studying jurisprudence with Abu Muhammad Wislan. A large
number of Ibadhi students, from different parts of Ibadhi countries of North
Africa, gathered around him to study theology. It was after the year 450 H.
that his students asked him to write a book on theology. After an initial
reluctance, he agreed to their wish and allowed them to write down his
lecturers, which he later edited and approved.262 This work took a form of a
detailed book of two volumes, and was known as K. al-Tuhaf.263
Comparing this book with extant earlier works, it is the most comprehensive
work, and contains detailed discussions on the following topics.
Part 1. What must not remain unknown of the faith; walayah and baraah;
command and prohibition; the speech of God; faith and infidelity (kufr);
enjoining good and prohibiting bad; knowledge and ignorance; prophethood
and the Message (al-risalah); unknown prohibitions; individual judgement and
when it is lawful; proofs for the existence of another world; the 'stages' of the
Ibadhi community (masalik al-din); on regarding opponent Muslims as
polytheists and evil-doers (fussaq); eternity in Hell; the vision; Ibadhis opinion
of the people of al-Nahr; 'divine decree'; 'Names' and 'attributes' of God; God's
'friendship' and 'enmity;' having sexual intercourse in the prohibited parts not
146
per vulvam; on the undecided case of the two 'Muslims' suspected of killing
each other; the Proof of God; the Imamate; Friday service; gifts from rulers;
''help' and 'guidance' (al-awn wa-i'ismah); discussion of Ibn al-Husain's doctrine
on God's command and prohibition concerning polytheists. The last eleven
topics are the questions on which Wahbi Ibadhis differed from the rest of the
Ibadhi groups.
In Part II the following subjects are discussed; the obligation of repentance;
obligations (faraid); emigration (hijrah); the attitude towards the apostate; the
testimony of the dissident Muslims; the wisdom of God; love of God; substance
(jawhar) and accident (arad); the motions; the 'attributes', senses; and finally,
the Unity of God and refutation of anthropomorphism and equalizing things
with God.
The contents of the book show that it was designed to cover all known
theological topics, and discuss contrary views of other groups such as Qadarites,
Murjiites, Sufris, and Hashwiyah, as well as the views of the other Ibadhi
splinter groups.
The following works were contributed by the students of Abu al-Rabi:
i) Masail al-Tawhid, by Abu al-Abbas Ahmad b. Muhammad b. Bakr 9d
504 H.).264
ii) K. usul al-din, by Tabghurin b. Dawud Isa al-Malshuti (lived during the
second half of the fifth century H.).265
iii) The third work is also written by Tabghurin b. Dawud Isa and known as
K. al-Jahalat. The author in this work phrases questions on different moot
theological problems and answers them one by one. It is reported that the
questions on man, distinction between infidelity and polytheism, and the signs
(al-dalail) were added to the text by Abu Ismail Ibrahim b. Mallal,266 but the
author of Sharh al-Jahalat, Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi, says that the additions are
ascribed to a number of Shaikhs, and he is not certain about who actually added
them.267
After this stage, scholastic theology attracted the attention of a number of great
Ibadhi scholars of North Africa. A group of theologians emerged in the Ibadhi
community of Warijlan and the surrounding areas, and they all left significant
works. In fact, the works written in this period attained such a degree as was
never surpassed by North Africa Ibadhi scholars of any other time.
The leading scholar of this group was Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi b. Abi Ya’qub
al-Tanawuti (first half of the sixth century H.).268 He studied Ibadhi theology
and jurisprudence under his teacher Abu Yahya Zakariya b. Abi Bakr in
Warijlan, and went to Tunis where he studied Arabic literature and grammar
147
at Zaitunah University.269
He wrote three books on theology:
i) Sharh al-Jahalat;
ii) K. al-Mujaz;
iii) K. al-Istila’ah.270
The last of these is still lost. He also composed two other short works:
Mukhtasar fi al-faraid, and Mukhtasar Tabaqat al-Mashaikh,271 and laid down
some rules for the Halqah.272
This chapter, however, is concerned only with his theological works. The first
book Sharh al-Jahalat is a commentary on K. al-Jahalat of al-Malshuti. In
Sharh al-Jahalat, Abu Ammar extends the answers given by Tabghurin b. Isa in
al-Jahalat with detailed discussions, ascribing opinions to their original sources,
and supporting the Ibadhi views with more proof.
His second book K. al-Mujaz fi tahsil al-sual wa talkhis al-maqal fi al-raddi ala
Ahli al-khilaf is a vast study of the theological views of Islamic and non-Islamic
doctrines. The book, designed to vindicate the Ibadhi and refute other views, is
divided into two parts; the contents of the first part deal mainly with the views
of the Atheists (mulhidun) and it is arranged as follows: Section (i) al-
Dahriyah, who maintain the eternity of time and matter. This section is
divided into three chapters - Astrologers, Naturalists, and Aristotelians.
Section (ii) The doctrine of Thanawiyah; Dualism, who teach that light and
darkness are the two equal eternal creative principles.273 This section is also
divided into three chapters - Manichaeans, Daisanis, and Mazdeans. Section
(iii) Those who deny the Message of the Apostles. This section deals with
Brahmanism, Magians, and the People of the Book. These latter were included
for their denial of the message and the prophethood of Muhammad. Section
(iv) The Anthropomorphists (ahl al-tashbih). The author divides the adherents
of this doctrine into three groups, and discusses each group in a special
chapter:
a) Those who regard anthropomorphism as a physical reality, and teach that
God is a body in a real physical sense with a human shape, composed of flesh
and blood, etc.
b) Those who teach anthropomorphism without applying direct physical
reality to it, and hold that God is a body unlike other bodies, and is a light
unlike known light, etc.
c) Those who wrongly impart anthropomorphic interpretations to Quranic
expressions.
148
The second part of the book is devoted to the discussion of the doctrine of the
'people of the Qiblah, (i.e. Muslims)." The author refutes their erring views, i.e.
views contrary to those of the Ibadhis, and justifies the stand-point of the latter.
The opinions of Qadarites, Murjiites, Kharijites, Azariqah and Sufriyah,
Mu’tazilites Jabriyah, Jahmiyah, and the Hashwiyah, as well as other dissident
Ibadhi groups, are discussed in this book wherever they differed from the views
of Wahbi Ibadhis.
The following subjects were dealt with in this section: (i) 'Divine Decree'; (ii)
'Divine Will'; (iii) 'Justice'; (iv) 'Faith'; (v) 'Promise and Threat'; (vi)
Classification of the Muslims who commit grave sins; (vii) Creation of the
Qur’an; (viii) The Proof of God against people; (ix) Religions other than
Islam; (x) The 'Names' of Allah; (xi) Allah's friendship and enmity; (xii) The
woman who permits sexual intercourse other than per vulvam; (xiii) The
Imamate; (xiv) Refutation of the Mu’tazili view of the shedding of Uthman's
blood; (xv) Refutation of the Zaydi view on the question of the arbitration;
(xvi) Refutation of the Nukkari view on the question of the Imam who is
excelled by others; (xvii) The problem of those who believe in the Qur’an, but
teach wrong doctrines as a result of incorrect interpretation.
The second scholar in this group is Abu Amr Uthman b. Khalifah al-Sufi, of
Wad Suf in southern Algeria. He lived during the first half other sixth century
H.274 His main theological work is K. al-Sualat.275 He also wrote a short
treatise on the Islamic sects, Risalah fi bayan kull firqah. In the latter work,
Abu Amr dealt mainly with the Ibadhi sects and presented a brief account of
their views, but he also mentioned some of the other Islamic sects.256
His K. al-Sualat is a large work on theology, with a mixture of literary
explanations of theological expressions based on Qur’an, hadith, and ancient
Arabic verse. It is a work rich in data on he Arabic language, together with
theological opinions and expressions used among Ibadhi scholars and students.
This book, though ascribed to him, is in fact a transmission of the responses
given to a large number of questions. The responses were reported by Abu
Amr from the students of Abu al-Rabi from their teacher Abu al-rabi Sulaiman
b. Yakhalaf. The book was dictated by Abu Ya’qub Yusuf b. Muhammad,
recorded by Isa b. Isa al-Nufusi, reviewed by the students of Abu Amr and
checked with the Ibadhi sources and the original sources of Arabic. Then it was
examined twice, first by Abu Muhammad Abdullah b. Sajmiman, al-Mu'izz b.
Janawin and Abu al-Futuh, then given a final review by Abu Nuh Salih b.
Ibrahim.277 The book contains detailed and elaborate answers to more than
ninenty questions covering subjects such as the unity of God, Profession of the
faith, walayah and baraah, command and prohibition, matters which must not
remain unknown, as well as basic dogmas of religion (usual al-din), nine of
149
which form the items of the Ibadhi creed, were pointed out.278
The third scholar in this group is Abu Ya’qub Yusuf b. Ibrahim al-Warijlani (d.
570 H.). He studied in Cordova in Spain and became one of the outstanding
scholars in different fields of knowledge.279
In scholastic theology, his main contribution was his well known book K. al-
Dalil li Ahli al-uqul,280 which consists of general introduction on schisms
within the Muslim community, and three parts as follows:
In part I the author set out the proofs for the rightness of his school, and
discussed the Ash'ari views on the attributes, promise and threat, and the
creation of the Qur’an. He included in this part his answers to a question sent
from Abd al-Wahhab al-Ansari to Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi who had died
before he could deal with it.
Part II contains discussions on the subject of what must not remain unknown of
the religion (ma la yasau jahluhu). The author after interpreting the opinions
reported on this topic from Abu al-Rabi Sulaiman b. Yakhalaf al-Mazati, went
on to discuss the distinctive views on different matters as held by ten Ibadhi
Imams in the following order: Jabir b. Zaid, Azzan b. al-Saqr, Lawwab b.
Sallam, al-rabi b. Habib, Aflah b. Abd al-Wahhab, Amrus b. Fath, Abu al-
Qasim Yazid b. Mukhallad, Abu Khazr Yaghla b. Zaltaf, Muhammad b.
Mahbub, and Massalah b. Yahya, which section he concluded with a brief study
on logic, and even some notes on arithmetic and geometry.
Part III consists of six long responses to questions addressed to the author.
The first response is concerned with the question of God's pleasure and wrath
(al-rida wa al-sukht);
ii) Ali's acceptance of arbitration; whether it was religious or arose from
mundane motives.
iii) The question of God's promise to answer prayer (dua), whether it relates to
Muslims only or applies to infidels as well?.
iv) A response concerning a Tradition reported in K. zahar al-uyun of Ibn
Qutaibah.
v) On the question of whether sound is a 'body' (jism).
vi) Finally, a response to people of Jabal Nufusah on the three following topics:
a) Walayah and baraah;
b) Defaming the Ibadhi faith;
c) The attributes of God.
150
These Aqaid were written in simple language - one of them originally in Berber
- and were short so that they could be easily memorised and understood by
students beginning their studies and by ordinary people as well.
The works added by subsequent Ibadhi scholars of later times were mainly
commentaries on some of these creeds. The earliest and most significant is the
commentary written on the poem of Abu Nasr by Abu Tahir Ismail b. Musa al-
Jitali entitled Sharh al-Nuniyah.294 In his other two works, Qawaid al-Islam
and Qanatir al-Khairat, al-Jitali included his own form of the Ibadhi theological
views,295 but it is remarkably brief compared with his large commentary on
al-Nuniyah which consists of three great volumes containing a detailed study of
Islamic theology.
Before moving to later periods, another author must be mentioned here.
Although his contribution to the field of theology was not great, he preserved
in his works many theological opinions from earlier sources, some of which are
still lost. The author was Abu al-Fadl Abu al-Qasim b. Ibrahim al-Barradi.296
Two of his works contain material on theology. The first entitled Shifa al-haim
bi sharhi badi al-Daaim is his commentary of the first five poems and part of
the sixth poem of the Diwan of Abu Bakr Ahmad b. al-Nazr al-Omani. The
first four poems deal with the topics of unity and refutation of
anthropomorphism, the proof for the cognition of God, creation of actions, and
the creation of the Qur’an. He also completed the commentary on the fifth
poem on ablution and thirteen verses from the sixth poem on the festival
prayers (Salat al-I'dain), but he did not comment on the rest of the Diwan. His
other work is a short treatise designed to give the Ibadhi definitions of a
number of useful technical terms. The treatise is entitled Risalah fi al-
haqa’iq.297
Towards the end of the eighth century H. Ibn Jumai translated Aqidat al-
tawhid into Arabic, and in 904 H. Abu al-Abbas Ahmad b. Said al-Shammakhi
(d. 928 H.) Completed his commentary on the Aqidah. The second
commentary on it was written by Abu Sulaiman Dawud b. Ibrahim al-Talati
(d. 967 H.)298 Among the theological works based on this Aqidah of Ibn
Jumai is al-Luluah fi ilm al-tawhid, a poem (Urjuzah) by Qasim b. Sulaiman b.
Muhammad al-Shammakhi (d. about 1275 H.),299 who also wrote a large
commentary on his poem.300 Shaikh Abu Sittah wrote a super commentary
(Hashiyah) on the commentary of al-Shammakhi mentioned earlier.301 The
last commentary on Aqidat al-tawhid of Ibn Jumai was written by Shaikh
Muhammad b. Yusuf Atfaiyish (d. 1336 H.) and was lithographed in Algiers
1326 H.
Regarding al-Qasidah al-Nuniyah of Abu Nasr, a number of commentaries was
written on it apart from the commentary of Ismail al-Jitali already mentioned.
152
The first was written by Umar al-Wirani (10th - 11th century H.), and is
entitled al-Musarrih. A large Hashiyah on this commentary was written by his
student Yusuf al-Musabi (d. 1187 H.).302 Another commentary on al-
Nuniyah was written by Abu al-Abbas Umar b. Ramadan al-Talati and
summarised by Abd al-Aziz b. Ibrahim al-Musabi (d. 1223 H./1808 A.D.)
bearing the title al-Nur.303
On the Diyanat of Abu Sakin Amir al-Shammakhi, two commentaries were
written. One was commenced by Abu Muhammad Abdullah b. Said al-
Sadwikshi (d. 1056 H.) and completed by Yusuf al-Musabi.304 The other was
written by Umar al-Talati in 1179 H. and lithographed in Cairo in 1304 H.
The super commentaries written during this late period covered also some of
the extensive early works. Among these super commentaries, two were written
by Muhammad b. Amr Abu Sittah,305 namely: (i) Hashiyah Ala Sharh al-
Jahalat; (ii) Hashiyah Ala al-Sualat. A further contribution in this line was
made by al-Qutb Muhammad b. Yusuf Atfaiyish in his Tafasir on the Qur’an;
Himyan al-zad ila dar al-maad, and taysir al-tafsir in which he vindicates Ibadhi
views and defends their beliefs,306 and also in his large commentary on the
Diwan of Abu Bakr Ahmad b. al-Nazr al-Omani.307
From the afore-going survey of the Ibadhi works in the field of theology in the
period starting from first half of the eighth century up to the beginning of the
present century H. it is clear that the major works written during this period
were either Shuruh or Hawashi (commentaries) on earlier works. The only
exception is K. Ma’alim al-din of Abd al-Aziz al-Thamini al-Musabi which does
not fall into either category.308
Another line taken by later Ibadhi writings in theology was directed against
Sunni attacks on the Ibadhi school. In their three communities of North
Africa, Mzab, Jerba Island, and Jabal Nufusah, Ibadhis faced literary attackers
on their faith and beliefs by Sunni opponents during the Ottoman rule.
Where Jabal Nufusah was concerned, three rejoinders were written in reply to
accusations, attacks and questions of Sunnis from Gharian and Ghadamas. The
first one was written by the famous Ibadhi historian Ahmad b. Said al-
Shammakhi in reply to a treatise written by Sulah b. Ibrahim al-Ghadamsi.309
In the introduction to his treatise Sulah al-Ghadamsi stated that he wrote it as
a rejoinder to certain 'papers' (awraq) which reached him from some Wahbi
Ibadhis containing views which he found himself constrained to refute.310 He
also mentioned that the Ibadhi writer indicated fifteen points on which Ibadhis
differed from Sunnis.311 However, those points were condensed to nine by
Sulah, and he discussed them all giving the Sunni views on each and refuting
what he considers to be the wrong views of the Ibadhis.
153
The following are the nine points discussed by Sulah al-Ghadamsi in his
treatise:
i) The Qur’an being created.
ii) The 'vision' (al-ru’yah).
iii) Anthropomorphism; the 'sitting on the Throne,' 'face' and 'hand' of God.
iv) The truth of 'faith (haqiqat al-Iman).
v) Banishment of the punishment of grave sinners.
vi) The Sunni view that the believer who persists in grave sin will enter
Paradise even after entering Hell.
vii) Sunni view on the possibility of forgiveness for people who have committed
grave sins.
viii) On the committer of grave sin, whether he is still a Believer (Mu'min) or
not.
ix) Intercession.
Shammakhi, in his criticism of the treatise of Sulah, defended the Ibadhi views
and discussed all those points in detail presenting views of almost all different
Islamic schools to prove that there are many schools besides the Ibadhis which
differ from the Malikis in their views.
Another similar work was written in 1210 H. by Isa b. Abi al-Qasim al-Baruni
in reply to a treatise by an anonymous author form Ghadamas. It appears that
the author of this latter treatise wrote it in reply to another treatise written by
some Ibadhis of Lalut (Nalut).312 Although the treatise dealt mainly with
accusations against Ibadhis of a non-theological nature, concerned with such
matters as Friday prayers, slaughtering etc. it also contained theological
arguments. For example, it claimed that a large number of Ibadhis disbelieve
in resurrection.313
Before refuting the accusations levelled by the Ghadamasi author, Isa al-Baruni
began his work by out-lining the Ibadhi creed (aqidah).314
The third response was written in reply to a question sent from Gharian to the
learned men of Jabal Nufusah.315 This reply was written by Abu Ishaq
Ibrahim b. Ya’qub al-Jadwi. On the theological side, it dealt with two topics
only; the creation of the Qur’an, and the vision.
The fourth and latest work was to refute a fatwa delivered by the Mufti of
Tripoli, Muhammad b. Mustafa, in which he regarded the people of Jabal
Nufusah as one of the "misguided groups.' The work was composed by Said al-
154
and other later Ibadhi scholars such as Qasim b. Said al-Shammakhi, Abdullah
al-Baruni and Said b. Tarit.
156
29 Ibid., III, 35-42. For further discussion on the subject cf. Jitali, op. cit., I, 170-181;
Tabghurin b. Isa, Usul al-din., 65-69
30 al-rabi b.Habib, op. cit., III, 53
31 Loc. cit.
32 Loc. cit.
33 Ibid., III, 19-60
34 Ibid., III, 38-39
35 al-Rabi b. Habib, op. cit., III, 39
36 For further details cf. infra, 337
37 Talati, Sharh al-Diyanat., Ms. 4 ff.
38 Tabghurin b. Isa, Usul al-din., 68-69, 72
39 al-Rabi b. Habib, Musnad., IV, 25
40 Ibid., III, 13
41 Ibid., III, 15
42 Ibid., III, 13
43 Ibid., III, 13-14
44 Ibid., III,14
45 Ibid., III, 13
46 Wensinck, A.J., Concordance et indices de la Tradition Musulmane., Leiden, 1965, IV,
317-18
47 al-Rabi b. Habib, op. cit., III, 14
48 Watt, M., Free Will and Predestination in Early Islam., 1946, 40 lf.; Barradi, Shifa al-
haim., Ms. 206
49 Darjini, Tabaqat., Ms. 231-32.; Shammakhi, Siyar., 85.
50 Ibid., 85
51 Darjini, Tabaqat., 222. Jitali, Sharh al-Nuniyah., II, 74
52 Jitali, op. cit.,II, 74
53 Loc. cit.; Barradi, Shifa al-haim., 224-25
54 Darjini, op. cit.; 222
55 Darjini, op. cit., 228.; Jitali, op. cit., II, 74-75
56 The origin text is ( ٍ) مِنْ حِلّ إلى حَرِم
57 Darjini, op. cit., 229
58 Jitali, Sharh al-Nuniyah., II, 62
158
91 Ibid., III, 6, 15
92 Ibid., IV, 19
93 Ibid., III, 4
94 Cf. infra, 331 ff
95 al-rabi b. Habib, op. cit., III, 16
96 Ibid., III, 16
97 Ibid., III, 16-17
98 Al-Qutb, Sharh al-Nil., X, 383. Cf. also, Shahrastani,Milal., I, 176. Rubinacci in Religion
in the Middle East, II, 309, ascribes this view to Ibadhis!!
99 Ibn al-Nadim, Fihrist., Cairo, 1348, 40
100 Subhi al-Salih, Mabahith fi ulum al-Qur’an., 159
101 Abdullah b. Yazid al-Fazari, K. al-rudud., Ms.33
102 Khamis b. Said, al-Minhaj., al-Baruniyah Ms. I, al-qawl al-sadis ashar.; Barradi, Shifa al-
haim., Ms. 285-86, Salimin, Tuhfat al-a'yan., I, 128-129.
103 Loc. cit.
104 Warijlani, Dalil., 7a.
105 Barradi, Shifa al-haim., 285.
106 Ibid., 286; Warijlani, Dalil., 149a.
107 Loc. cit.
108 This treatise is included in K. al-Jawahir of al-Barradi, 183-201.
109 Ibn Saghir, Chronique sur les Imams Rostemides., edited and translated by Motylinski,
27-30.
110 al-Rabi b. Habib, Musnad., I, 18.
111 Ibid., I, 18-19; III, 10; For further details cf. J. Wilkinson, Oman., D. Ph. thesis, Oxford,
1969, 64-88 and Appendix F: The Imam and his Powers.
112 Cf. infra, 397ff.
113 al-Rabi, op. cit., IV, 31.
114 Ibid., IV, 31-32.
115 Ibid., IV, 31-32.
116 Loc. cit.
117 Loc. cit.
118 Cf. Qur’an: XLVIII, 2.
119 al-Rabi b. Habib, op. cit, IV, 32-34
120 Ibid., II 31-33, traditions: 483, 487, 490.
160
153 al-Qutb, Sharh al-Nil., X, 325; Sharh al-Aqidah., 115; Abdullah b. Yahya al-Baruni,
Sullam al-ammah., 12.
154 Motylinski, "L’Aqida des Abadhites," (Recueil de memoires et de textes public en honneur
du XIVe Congres des Orientalistes., Algiers, 1905, 505-545; Rubinacci, R., "La professione di
fede di al-Gannawuni," A.I.O.N., N.S., 14, (1964), 553-595.
155 The term "names" here refers to the names of the different groups of people with regard to
their attitude, whether they are Muslims, Hypocrites, or Polytheists, etc., and not to the
"Names" of God.
156 Qur’an., VI, 103. Arberry's translation.
157 Qur’an., XLIX, 9. Rodwell's translation.
158 Qur’an., X, 44. Arberry's translation.
159 The Arabic word is al-ibad, which means also people in general, regardless of whether
they believe or disbelieve in God.
160 This term, "infidel-ingrate" is suggested by my supervisor Professor Serjeant for the Arabic
term (kafir kufr ni’mah) which is used in Ibadhi writings for the Muslims who commit major
sin.
161 Shammakhi, op. cit., 104-105.
162 Loc. cit.
163 Shammakhi, op. cit., 104-105.
164 Abu Zakariya, Siyar., 16a; Darjini, Tabaqat., 53.
165 Ibid., 53; Abu Zakariya, op. cit., 16b.
166 ibid., 16a; Darjini, op. cit., 53
167 Abu Amr al-Sufi, Firaq., 53.
168 Loc. cit.
169 Abu Zakariya, op. cit., 16a.
170 al-Qutb, Risalah shafiyah., 52.
171 Shammakhi, Siyar., 280; Sufi, Firaq., 53.
172 al-Mas'udi, Muruj al-Dhahab., II, 137; Ibn Hazm, Milal., II, 112.
173 Ibn al-Nadim, Fihrist., 258; Ibn Sallam, Bad’u l-Islam., 13.
174 The Ms. of this book is in the possession of Aiyad al-Azzabi of Zwarah, Libya. He was
kind enough to lend me the Ms. for consultation for this study.
175 Warijlani, Dalil., 66a; Sufi, Firaq., Ms. 2-3.
176 Sufi, op. cit., 2.
177 Ibid., 3.
178 Abu Zakariya, op. cit., 15a; Darjini, op. cit., 50.
179 Ibid., 53-55; Abu Zakariya, op. cit., 16a-17a.
162
309 In “Bibliographic du Mzab,” No. 38, Motylinski mentioned the following work: (كتاب
) مين وضيع أبيي إبراهييم الغدامسيي فيي رد على مين ل يقول بخلق القرآنI suggest that he might
have been confused with the work of Sulah mentioned here
310 Jawab Sulah., Ms. I
311 Ibid., 3
312 Jawab Isa l-baruni liba'di fuqaha Ghadamas., Ms. 18
313 Ibid., 38
314 Ibid., 3-14
315 Cf. My “description of new Ibadhi Mss.,” op. Cit., 73
316 The work was lithographed in Tunis (1331) H) p. 265
317 Abu Zakariya al-Baruni, Tabaqat., 19; al-Qutb, Risalah shafiyah., 128
318 This Jawab was lithographed together with other Ibadhi works in Tunis, 1321 H., pp.
106-187
319 Cf. Ali Mu’ammar, op. Cit., 199-200, 391, 393, 394
320 This work was published together with other works, no place or date are shown. Mss.
Of the work are also available
321 Zambaur, Manuel de genealogie et de chronologie pour l’histoire de L’Islam., 1955, 85
322 Jawab Ahl Jazirat Jirbah li-ikhwanihim al-Umaniyin., Ms. 7
323 This treatise was published with other works. No place or date are shown.
324 Cf. supra, 300.
168
CHAPTER V
The word friendship is usually used for the Arabic word al-walayah, but to my
mind, the word friendship does not give the full import of the word al-walayah
as used in Ibadhi writings. It is a religious duty which controls human
emotions of love and hatred in accordance with Islamic teaching. Realising this
fact, the term ‘al-walayah’ is used in this study to convey the meanings: love,
fraternity, unity among the Muslimsand the duties related to these.
The other Arabic word, al-baraah, expresses the converse of al-walayah. It
means to excommunicate. This term was used in Ibadhi writings to express the
following:
i) The obligation to abuse and curse the infidel,
11.) . )إيجاب الشتم واللعنة للكافر
ii) Hostility and enemity, 12.) )المنابذة والعدوة
iii) Hatred in the heart and abuse by the tongue,
13.) )البغض بالقلب والشتم باللسان
iv) Dissociation from the enemy and wrongful action initiated by him,
and the belief in hatred towards him,
14.) واعتقاد بغضه، )التبرّ ى من العدو وحدثه
These two terms, al-walayah and al-baraah, were used by Ibadhis scholars to
indicate the attitude of the believers towards their fellow Muslims and towards
the infidels.
The third term connected with al-walayah and al-baraah is al-wuquf,
‘reservation.’ If a believer is not certain with regard to the deeds or faith of a
person, he must abstain from passing judgement on him until he becomes sure
of these; he must then arrive at a definite attitude towards him, either of
walayah, or of baraah.15
According to some Ibadhi scholars, walayah is agreement in religion in respect
of word and works.16 The person deserving walayah from the believers is he
who is fully obedient to God, and who attains all good qualities through his
performance of all religious duties, and through abstention from what is
forbidden.17 Other scholars believe that the verbal agreement of a person with
the Muslims is enough for him to deserve walayah.
This opinion was advanced by al-Salimi on the basis of the following Quranic
verse. “O Prophet, when believing women come to thee upon the terms that
they will not associate with God anything and will not steal, neither commit
adultery, nor slay their children, nor bring a calumny they forge between their
feet, nor disobey thee in aught honourable, ask God forgiveness for them; God
170
I Walayah with God, i.e. obeying God’s orders and avoiding what He has
forbidden. On the other hand thee is the walayah of God with the believers,
explained as His guidance, support, and protection for them.27 This was the
issue on which the theological question arose, as to whether God’s (walayah),
with the Believers or His baraah, from the Infidels is immutable for His
knowledge of their deeds is absolute.28
II Walayah with all Muslims in general, Mankind, Jinn, forbears and their
posterity, up to the Day of Judgement, with no particular person in mind. This
includes all the believers of peoples of the past ages, the believers of the present
and the future, whether Mankind or Jinn.29
III Walayah with those preserved from sin, (masumun). This must be directed
to the Angels, Prophets, Apostles of God, and to other ‘awliya’ of God,
mentioned in the Quran by name or description,30 as also those who were
commended by the Apostle of God.31 The following are the ‘preserved from
sin’ mentioned in the Quran, commended by God, Who granted them
Paradise.
a) All Prophets and Apostles of God in general, but especially Adam
and Muhammad as combining the offices of Prophet and Apostle.32
b) The Priests and Monks mentioned in the following verses of the
Quran; “…..And thou surely find the nearest of them in love to the believers
are those who say, ‘We are Christians;’ that, because some of them are priests
and monks, and they wax not proud, and when they hear what has been sent
down to the Messenger, thou seest their eyes overflow with tears because of the
truth they recognise. They say, ‘Our Lord, we believe; so do thou write us
down among the witnesses. Why should not we believe in God and the truth
that has come to us, and be eager that our Lord should admit us with the
righteous people?’ And God rewards them for what they say with gardens
underneath which rivers flow, therein dwelling forever, that is the recompense
of the good-doers.”33
c) The people of he Cave, (The Seven Sleepers of Ephesus); for being
mentioned in the following verse, “… When the youths took refuge in the
Cave saying, ‘Our Lord, give us mercy from thee, and furnish us with rectitude
in our affair.”34 And, “We will relate to thee their tidings truly. They were
youths who believed in their Lord, and We increased them in guidance. And
We strengthened their hearts, when they stood up and said, ‘Our Lord is the
Lord of heavens and earth; we will not call upon any God, apart from Him.’”35
iv) The people of the Trench, () أصيحاب الخدود, about whom the Quran
speaks in the surah of al-Buruj, verses 4-11.
172
believers.
There are four further sections going with this part of ‘walayah’:
A) ‘Walayah’ with the Ibadhi Imams and religious leaders who propagated
the true teachings of Islam, and refuted false teachings. ‘Walayah’ with them is
obligatory for the people of their country, and all other Muslims who hear of
them. They merit ‘walayah’ for being widely known for activity in propagating
the true religion and defending it. This ‘walayah’ cannot be changed even if a
large number of people spoke ill of them.50 According to those scholars who
say that the Imams of the ‘manifest stage’ must not remain unknown to the
believers, ‘walayah’, must be directed to them as well.51 Ibadhi sources give
the following list of the Imams of the ‘manifest stage’ (52.) مسلك الظهور:
i) Abu Bakr b. Abi Quhafah al-Taimi, the first Caliph.
ii) Umar b. al-Khattab of B. Adiy, the second Caliph.
iii) Abdullah b. Yahya al-Kindi, the founder of the first Ibadhi state in South
Arabia, i.e. Yemen and Hadramawt.
iv) Abu al-Khattab Abd al-A’la b. al-Samh al-Maafiri, the first Imam of the
Ibadhi state in North Africa, (Libya and Tunisia).
v) Abd al-Rahman b. Rustam al-Farisi, the founder of the Ibadhi state in
Tahert, and his successors:
vi) His son, Abd al-Wahhab;
vii) Aflah b. Abd al-Wahhab;
viii)Muhammad b. Aflah;
ix) Yusuf b. Muhammad.
Some scholars add al-Julanda b. Masud, the Imam of the Ibadhi state of
Uman.53
II) ‘Walayah with the just ruler,’ walayat al-imam al-adil or al-sultan al-adil:
This ‘walayah is to be directed to the rulers, the officers who help them to rule
the country, and all Muslims under their rule. This is known in Ibadhi writings
technically as ‘walayat al-baidah’, (baidah meaning the capital).54 So, in any
country which is governed by those who act according to the teachings of the
Quran, follow the law of the Prophet, commend the practice of the Sunnah,
refute heresy, and who are neither biased towards their kinsmen, nor fanatical
against foreigners, must be taken as awliya”, and their country must be called,
‘land of justice and good action’, dar al-adl was al-ihsan. Every individual from
that country merits ‘walayah’.55
175
III) ‘Walayah with those converted to Islam from polytheism;’ this ‘walayah’ is
their due for accepting Islam and professing there is no God but Allah and that
Muhammad is the Apostle of Allah. Some scholars stipulate that the converted
person must declare his baraah from tyrants,56 regardless of whether he was
converted to Islam by an opponent Muslim or by an Ibadhi, except in such case
as when the Muslim opponent) was in error, yet the convert nevertheless
adopted that same error.57
IV) ‘Walayat with those who recanted their erroneous views and became
Ibadhis’. This section includes two kinds of individuals:
a) Those who follow the ‘ulama’ in their religion, muqallidun, or ‘ammah; the
requirements from the muqllidun as such are to repent and say, ‘I am one of
you. Your ‘waliy’ is my ‘waliy’, and your enemy is my enemy.’ He thereby
becomes a member of the Ibadhi community.58
Those who are able to formulate independent decisions on legal or
b)
theological matters, mujtahidun; the mujtahid must repent of all his erroneous
views, recounting them one by one, publicly declaring his recantation, and
affirming the true doctrines.59
The heretic, mubtadi, who had propagated his heresies, bida, must contact
those who had followed him in his heresies and tell them of his repentance
wherever they should be; after so doing, he will be accepted as a member of the
Ibadhi community and a ‘waliy.’60
V) The last section on this subject is ‘walayah’ with minors’, walayat al-
atfal,:
Conflicting opinions are reported about this matter; the Murjites held the view
that all minors have the right to ‘walayah’. This is also the opinion of Muadh b.
Jabal, the Companion of the Prophet.61 The Sufris, a branch of the Kharijites,
held that minors are to be treated like their parents; i.e., the children of infidels
are infidels and the believers must dissociate themselves from them.62 The
common view of the Nukkar and Ahmad b. al-Husain is ‘reservation,’ wuquf,
in respect of all minors until they reach majority. The view of the rest of the
Ibadhis is belief in ‘walayah’ with minors of the believers, and ‘reservation’ for
those of the infidels and polytheists.63 The arguments and proofs adduced by
each group on this question were discussed in detail in Ibadhi sources.64
The minors of believers are entitled to ‘walayah’ when:65
1) The child’s paternity is established, i.e. when it is known to be the child of
an Ibadhi.
2) The father says, ‘This is my child’, the child being present. Some scholars
say the father’s assertion of paternity is not enough, and it must be supported
176
II) Unequivocal baraah, barrat al-haqiqah; or barrat ahl al-waid;68 the latter
meaning ibaraah from the people under threat, (ahl al-waid), whom the Quran
declares to be destined for Hell. The believers must dissociate themselves from
the people under threat, in the belief and knowledge that they are among the
denizons of Hell.69 The following are the people under threat:
1) Haman, the supporter of Pharaoh, for God says, “Therefore We seized him
and his hosts, and cast them into the sea.”70 And, “…… and there
encompassed the folk of Pharaoh the evil chastisement, the Fire to which they
shall be exposed morning and evening……”71
2) Qarun, about whom God says, “so We made earth to swallow him and his
dwelling and there was no host to help him, apart from God, and he was
helpless.”72
3) Pharaoh, of whom God says, “Go to Pharaoh; he has waxed insolent.”73
4) Al-Numrudh, mentioned in the following verses of the Quran, “… who
disputed with Abraham, concerning his Lord, that God had given him the
kingship? When Abraham said ‘My Lord is He who gives life and make to die,
he said, “I give life and make to die.’ Said Abraham, ‘God brings the sun from
the east; so bring thou it from the west.’ The believer was confounded. God
guides not the people of the evildoers.”74
5) Noah’s and Lot’s wives; for God says, “God has struck similitude for the
unbelievers – the wife of Noah and the wife of Lot; for they were under two of
Our righteous servants, but they betrayed them, so they availed them nothing
whatsoever against God; so it was said, ‘Enter you two the Fire with those who
enter.’75
These Qura’nic personalities were the people under threat distinguished by
Amr b. Jumai in Aqidat al-tawhid;76 more were added by Shaikh Muhammad
b. Yusuf Atfaiyish.77
1) Baraah from every individual whose misdeeds are known to the believers;
these fall into two categories:
a) Those who commit major sins (kabair). A major sin is what incurs (hadd)
punishment in this World, and chastisement (adhab) in the World to Come.
Stealing, committing adultery, drinking wine, deserting in the face of the
enemy, are some of the major sins.78
b) Baraah from those who persistently commit minor sins; e.g. prevarication of
a harmless nature, lustful eyeing of foreign women, taking away something
from a friend without his permission, etc.79 Maghribi Ibadhis held that minor
sins are not distinguished, while only certain major sins are specified in the
Qura'n and Traditions. So believers must be wary of every sin in order to avoid
178
major sins.80 Minor sins become major by constant repetition,81 which fact
makes it obligatory for the believers to declare baraah from the sinner
Baraah from individuals takes place in one of the following circumstances:
i) When a person confesses that he has committed a major sin or persisted in
committing minor sin,82 and when a person regards his erroneous opinions as
the true religion of God, considering those Muslims who disagree with him as
Polytheists.83
ii) When a believer sees a person actually committing a major sin or persisting
in minor sins.
iii) The testimony of two persons of equity that a certain individual merits
baraah obliges the believers to declare baraah from him. This principle was
established and put into practice by Jabir b. Zaid, the first Imam of the
Ibadhis.84
The testimony of one person is not enough to necessitate baraah from the
believer. On the contrary, it leads believers to dissociate themselves from that
person if he cannot support his accusation of the believer by the testimony of
another person of equity.85 So if one (waliy), along reports that another ‘waliy’
has committed a major sin, the believers must declare baraah from the accuser.
It is the same with non-Ibadhi Muslims, if one, or even a group of these,
ascribes a major sin to a ‘waliy’, the believers should reject the accusation and
dissociate themselves from the.86
iv) The believers must declare baraah from the activities of a malefactor.87
2) Baraah from the tyrant, (al-sultan al-jair): Believers must declare baraah
from him and from all who support his rule; but this should not include
everyone under his rule because true believers may be under a tyrant’s rule, yet
not oppose him out of religious dissimulation, (taqiyah). Any country governed
by tyrants and unjust rulers must be declared land of tyranny and injustice, (dar
al-jawr wa al-zulm). The believers, in addition to declaring baraah from such
rulers and their followers, must not take any one of them as a ‘waliy.’88
3) Baraah from apostates, (murtaddun): for God says, “….. And whosoever
of you turns from his religion and dies disbelieving – their works have failed in
this world and the next; those are the inhabitants of the Fire; therein they shall
dwell forever.”89 The Prophet also said, “Whosoever changed his religion, you
must kill him.”90 It is agreed among all Muslim scholars that the Prophet, in
this tradition, was referring to the apostate.91 In accordance with this
Tradition, the Ibadhis held that the person who abjures Islam and adopts
polytheism deserves ‘baraah’ and execution, (al-baraah wa al-saif).92 But it is
reported that the second Caliph, Umar b. Khattab, gave the apostates three
179
days in which to repent. So if they refuse to do so they must be killed and all
their rights as Muslims such as ‘’walayah’, marriage, Muslim burial, and
inheritance, are to be abolished.
4) Baraah from those who recant their Ibadhi views and adopt those of other
schools, taking the leaders of those schools as their “awliya” and declaring
‘baraah’ from the Ibadhi Imams. The believers must dissociate themselves from
such defaulters until they repent. Those who relinquish Ibadhism and malign
the Ibadhis are to be killed or assassinated by any means possible.93
A ‘waliy’ who commits a major sin, the believers must ask to repent. If he
refuses, they must declare ‘baraah From him. Some scholars say that the
believers declare ‘baraah’ from him first, then ask him to repent. In such cases,
repentance may be sought up to three times, then the believer is not further
obliged to ask the sinner to repent. According to the second Imam of the
Ibadhis Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah, this rule must be carried out
“till the devil become the loser.”
94. )) حتّى يكون الشيطان هو الخاسر
RESERVATION (AL-WUQUF)
Reservation is another obligatory duty connected with ‘assocation’ and
‘dissociation’ (al-walaya and al-bara`ah). If the person was not qualified for
association or dissocation, his state must be of ‘reservation’. ‘Reservation’ is an
obligation as long as the persom`s case is not clear. This attitude is eatablished
on the basis of the following verses of the Qur`an:(حتيى يكون الشيطان هيو
) الخاسر
1. “And pursue not that thou hast no knowledge of; hearing, the sight, the
heart- all those shall be questioned of”95
2. “O Believers, if an ungodly man come to you with a tiding, make clear,
lest you afflict a people unwittingly, and then repent of what you have done”96
The following Traditions of the Prophet are produced to strengthen this view:-
It is reported that the Prophet said:
1. Human affairs are of three types: One whose rightness is obvious to you;
you must follow it. And one whose error is clear to you; you must avoid it. And
one which is dubious; you must leave this affair to God”.97
2. The Prophet also said: “The beliver is cosiderate, and the hyprocrite is
hot-headed”.98
Al-Salimi pointed out five sections of ‘reservation’99 the first of which is
180
'reigious reservation' (wuquf al-din) or, as some call it, ‘safety reservation’
(wuquf al-salamah). This is the reservation about a legally capable person whose
case is unknown to the believers.
All Ibadhi scholars agreed on this section, but did not agree on the others. The
second is reservation about an ‘associate’ (waliy) involved in action which the
believers were not sufficiently aware of to form judgement; some scholars say
that the believers attitude in this case must be of ‘reservation’.
The third section of ‘reservation’ is the ‘reservation’ of questioning (wuquf al
sual). It resembles the second section with the additional stipulation that the
believer should ask learned people about the unknown action.100
The fourth section is the ‘reservation’ about dubious matters (wuquf al-ishkal).
It is applied in the case of two ‘associates’ (awliya) who curse or kill each other,
leaving the fact of the real wrong doer unknown to the believers. The ibadhi
sources cite the case of al-Harith and ‘Abd al-Jabbar; who were found dead
with the sword of each thrust into the body of the other. Both of them were in
the state of ‘assocaition’ (walaya) but their death left doubt in the minds of
believers about the real offender.
Sime scholars, including Nukkar, say that it islegal to have a reserved attitude
about them; while others (i.e. Maghribi Wahbi scholars) held the view that
they should be left in their former state of ‘association’.101
The fifth section according to al-Salimi is the ’reservation’ out of doubt (wuquf
al-shakk). This is to have a reserved attitude about all people, and to take as
‘associates’ only those who held the same attitude of ‘reservation’. This kind of
‘reservation’ is considered to be illegal, because it implies the neglect of
obligatory association for those who deserve it.102
“Take for thy brother whom thou wilt in the days of peace, but know that
when fighting comes thy kinsman, but kow that when fighting comes thy
kinsman alone is near. Thy true friend thy kinsman is who answers thy call for
aid with good will, when deeply drenched in blooshed are sword and spear”.104
The new teachings of Islam, although it recognised the tribal system, it shook
the age old pagan Arab ideal of ethnic loyalty to one`s tribe and family to its
foundation. The loyalty is transferred to God and his Prophet; its duties are
religious obligations rather than traditional duties required by honour. And,
“Islam, rather than tribal affiliation, is to be the unifying principle of
society.”105 The system of ‘walayah’ and ‘baraah’ was established don these
basic principles from the very beginning of the new Muslim community in
Mecca.
On the other hand, the tribe sometimes cannot have complete control over its
members who involve themselves in actions which create intra-tribal and intra-
family problems affecting the whole tribe or family. To avoid the troubles
caused by such irresponsible members, the family or the tribe forsakes them.
The custom in this case as reported by al-Zawzani is that the man brings his
son to the tribal gatherings in markets and centres of pilgrimage, and declares
in public that he has repudiated his son; so he would not be responsible for any
crime committed by the repudiated son; and also he would not claim for
revenge if a crime is committed against that son.106
The repudiated person is known as al-khali, or al-lain, or al-tarid.107 The first
two terms were recorded in poems from al-Shammakh b. Dirar and
Imru’ulqais.108 Among the offences that make the tribe or family forsake its
member are continuos addiction to wine, and extravagant wastage of money, as
it is recorded in the ode of Tarafa b. al-Abd.109
ويعي وإنفاقي طريقي ومتلدي وما زال تشرابي الخمور ولذتي
وأفردت إفراد البعير المعبد إلى أن تحامتني العشيرة كلها
This treatment of the bad or guilty member of the tribe in pre-Islamic period
seems to be the root of the system, which came to be known afterwards as
(baraah). The Qurashites used this sort of treatment against B. Hashim and B.
Muttalib in Mecca because of their protection of the Prophet. The document
(sahifah) written by the polytheists for this purpose states that those who
agreed on that document should neither marry the women folk of B. Hashim
and B. Muttalib, nor give women to them to marry, and they should neither
buy from them nor sell to them.110 This boycott of the Muslims and their
protectors lasted more than two or three years. Islam afterwards made a useful
weapon out of this system. The first use of this principle was made to create a
sense of homogeneity among the members of the newly-emerging Muslim
182
to discuss with him the matter of divine decree (al-qadar). They went to the
house of Hajib and spent a long time in the discussion. The last words heard
from Abu Ubaidah in that discussion were, ‘Oh, Hamzah, about this I
disagreed with Ghailan.’ Then Hajib talked to Hamzah, for his respect for
Hajib was greater than his respect for Abu Ubaidah. Hamzah said, ‘I narrated
this opinion from the Muslims (i.e. Ibadhis).’ Hajib said, ‘You did not meet
anyone whom I did not meet, except Jabir b. Zaid; so, from whom did you
learn this view?’ ‘From you’, said Hamzah. Hajib said, ‘I give up this view, so
do as I did.’ Hamzah said, ‘Treat me gently and accept what I say; Whatever
good visits you, it is of God, and whatever evil visits you is of yourself. So good
(hasanah) is of God, and evil (sayiah) is of Man; and I say, “God charges no soul
beyond its capacity.” Hajib did not accept this from him, and Hamzah left the
place. When Hajib did not accept this from him, and Hamzah left the place.
When Hajib was asked about him he said, ‘treat Hamzah gently.’ Then,
afterwards, they heard that Hamzah contacted the women and men of little
knowledge to teach them his views, Abu Ubaidah ordered Hajib to call the
members of the movement for a general meeting in which they were informed
about the heresies of Hamzah. Hajib concluded the speeches in that meeting
and said, ‘Hamzah, Atiyyah, and al-Harith brought about heresies to us, so
whomsoever offered them shelter, or received them, or sat with them, is
suspected of disloyalty to us.’ Abu Ubaidah declared baraah from them, and
ordered that they must be in the state of baraah and they were expelled from
the (majalis).120 Hamzah used to visit Halabiyah Umm Sa’idah; when she
heard that the Ibadhis had forsaken him, she refused to receive him any more;
so he left Basrah for al-Mawsil and Abu Mahfuz went out after him from one
village to another warning the Muslims of him.121 The other case n the time
of Abu Ubaidah was that of the youths who came to Abu Ubaidah and asked
him about the case of a Christian who had not heard of the Prophet of Islam,
and invited a Majian to Christianity. Abu Ubaidah asked them their opinion.
Their reply was that the Christian who had not heard of the Prophet of Islam
was a Muslim, and the Majian who agreed to follow him was an infidel;. Abu
Ubaidah rejected their opinion but they insisted on it; so he declared ’baraah’
from them. The youths came to Hajib with broken hearts asking him to save
them, for Abu Ubaidah hastened to declare ‘baraah’ from them though they
were just asking him about his opinion. Hajib told Abu Ubaidah that they
repented, and arrangements were made for them to rejoin the (majalis).122
These rules were followed throughout the Ibadhi history so much that contrary
opinions could not grow in the Ibadhi community. But consequently, a
number of the adherents of this sect broke away from the original movement
and formed their own groups.123
If the defection consisted of breaking away from the organisation and defaming
185
the Ibadhi views or giving away their secrets, their attitude towards these
persons is not to forsake them only, but to kill them by any means.124 It is
reported that an Ibadhi youth came to Jabir b. Zaid and asked him about the
best form of Jihad. Jabir said, ‘Killing Khardalah,’ and the youth asked
another man to show him Khardalah and he stabbed him with a poisoned
dagger inside the mosque. According to a al-Jitali, Khardalah was a member of
the Ibadhi movement but he relinquished Ibadhism and gave away the names
of the members of the Ibadhi community to their enemies, and disclosed the
locations of the places in which the Ibadhis held their meetings.125
Secrecy (kitman), Manifestation (zuhur), Defence (difa), and Life Sacrifice
(shira).127
The course of Islamic history as presented by the Ibadhis shows that the true
Muslim community, for which they stood in their struggle, existed in one of the
above mentioned four stages. The ‘manifest state’ of Islam, which was
established by the Prophet in Medinah, prevailed during the caliphate of Abu
Bakr and Umar, the first six years of the caliphate of Uthman and under the
rule of Ali until he accepted the arbitration. After that the Muslim community
was divided into three main groups: “those who extolled the cause of Uthman,
those who extolled the cause of Ali, and the Muslims who kept to the right
guidance.128
The Ibadhis stood for the cause of the revival of the ‘manifest state’ when the
‘rightly guided’ Muslims failed to revive it and were massacred in the battle of
al-Nahrawan. They started a secret organisation in which they taught their
members the true religion. It was essential for he members of the movement to
know about the error which led to the corruption of the teachings of the Qur’an
as explained and practised by the Prophet and his first two successors; as for the
people who were responsible for the errors, the Ibadhis declared (baraah) from
them. This principle freed the Ibadhis from the personal influence of the
Companions of the Prophet who played the most important part in the civil
wars among the Muslims. They judged these people according to the measure
of piety and goodness as enunciated by the Qur’an and the Sunnah. Their
faults were presented clearly in the early literature of the Ibadhis. In his letter
to the Umayyad caliph, Abd al-Malik b. Marwan, Abdullah b. Ibad pointed out
the faults of Uthman which caused the rising of the Muslims against his
rule;129 he said, “When the believers saw the faults of Uthman, they
renounced him; for the believers are the witnesses to God.”130 He further
commented, “Whosoever took Uthman and those who wee with him as hi =s
friends, we declare our estrangement from them, and for this we beg witness of
God and His Angels. We are enemies of them with our hands, tongues and
hearts. With this belief we live and with it we die……..”131
186
them.140 All Caliphs and their governors starting from Mu’awiyah were
regarded as tyrants (Salatin al-Jawr). Ibadhis declared baraah from them with
exception of Umar b. Abd al-Aziz the Umayyad caliph. Some Ibadhi scholars
state that he was legal Imam because of the unanimous resolution of Muslims
(ijma al-ummah) to accept his Imamate.141 Some scholars report that Abu
Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah asked God to bestow His mercy upon Umar
b. Abd al-Aziz, which meant that Umar deserved (walayah).142 It is further
reported that Abu Ubaidah sent delegation to Umar to invite him to accept the
Ibadhi doctrine. After a long discussion Umar agreed with them on almost
everything, but he refused to renounce Uthman and said, “God made our
hands clean of that blood so let our tongues also be clean of it.”143 They
refused to accept his opinion and the head of the Ibadhi delegation, Abu al-
Hurr Ali b., al-Husain told Umar: “Know that we are not going to take you
for a friend."144 "I wish they accepted the opinion of Umar.145 It is further
reported by al-Fadl b. al-Hawwari that Umar b. Abd al-Aziz acceded to the
Ibadhi doctrine, and baraah from the ‘tyrants’ and agreed to accept Ibadhis as
“awliya.” The delegation asked him to declare this openly, as, according to
Ibadhis, religious dissimulation (taqiyah) does not behove the just ruler. Umar
could not agree with them and promised them to revive a Sunnah and abolish a
heresy every day, but they refused his proposal.146 Maghribi Ibadhis held that
Umar b. Abd al-Aziz was nearer to ‘baraah.’ Abd al-Wahhab b. Abd al-
Rahman b. Rustam, the second Imam of the Ibadhi state in Tahert, was asked
about his opinion of Umar b Abd al-Aziz and he replied, “He was not
commended among the Muslims (i.e. Ibadhis). They did not take him as a
‘waliy’, and he was nearer to ‘baraah’.”147
To begin with, the Ibadhi sources discussed in detail the problem of tyranny
and the tyrants; and the attitude that was maintained by the Ibadhis under
their rule. The following is the description of the tyrants given by Abu Ya’qub
Yusuf b. Ibrahim al-Warijlani, “Tyrants are those who rule the people by force
and do not comply with the laws of the shari’ah. They neither call others to
shari’ah nor they follow it. They neglect Zakat, alms- giving, tithes and land
tax. They do not care about the shari’ah or fulfilling (hadd) punishments.
They devise for themselves special ways to administer their own creed; build
high palaces and houses, protect them with guards and servants. They have
raids on towns and take all property as fines and bails; and use guards and
servants. They drink wine and wear silk; enjoy music and use screens; and
show injustice in every thing.”148 Ibadhi sources point out for example, Ziyad
b. Abi Sufyan, and al-Hajjaj b. Yusuf as tyrant’s Salatin al-jawr). A list of
names of the tyrants of Maghrib and al-Andalus is given by Abu Ya’qub al-
Warijlani in his book al-Dalil wa al-Burhan.149 All Ibadhi scholars agree that
such rulers have no right of (walayah); they and their supporters must be in the
188
state of bara’ah.
It appears that all Muslims in general in the first half of the first century knew
the principle of al-walayah and al-baraah. Ali, Mu’awiyah and their supporters
have practised it. Ibadhi sources report that the Muslims gave Ali b. Abi Talib
the pledge of allegiance on the oath given to Abu Bakr and Umar, and on
bara’ah from ‘Uthman and his party. 150 Jahiz also reported that Mu’awiyah
sat in Kufah receiving the oath of allegiance from the people on the condition
of bara’ah from ‘Ali b. Abi Talib; then a man from b. Tamim came and
Mu’awiyah asked him to give his oath on that condition, the man said, O,
Commander of the faithful, we obey your living, i.e. the Companions, and will
not declare bara’ah from your dead.” 151 It is also reported that Hujr b. ‘Adiy
and his followers (‘Ali’s party) used to curse Mu’awiyah gave orders for them to
be arrested, and sent his messenger to the min prison to call them to bara’ah
from ‘Ali if they wanted to be set free; and if they refused, they would be killed.
Eight out of fourteen, among whom was Hujr, refused to declare baraah from
Ali, and they were killed.153 Kharijites were also among those who advocated
the principle of al-walayah wa al-baraah.154 In his letter to Simak b. Ubaid,
al-Mustawred b. Ullafah wrote, “….. We call you to the book of God, the
Sunnah of the Prophet, and to (walayah) for Abu Bakr and Umar, blessing of
God unto them, and to (baraah) from Uthman and Ali b. Abi Talib because of
their innovations in religion, and their abandonment of the judgement of the
Qur’an.”155 It is also reported that the Muhakkimah leaders who joined
Abdullah. Al-Zubair to protect Mecca from the attack of the Umayyad army,
asked Abdullah b. Al-Zubair to renounce Uthman, al-Zubair and Talhah.156
The same is reported about Urwah b. Udaiyah who was asked by Ubaidullah b.
Ziyad about his opinion of Uthman and Ali, his reply was that he took Uthman
as a (waliy) for the first six years of his rule, then he declared ‘baraah’ from him
for the rest; and he took Ali for a waliy up to the time he accepted
arbitration.157
Ibadhi followed the doctrine of (al-walayah wa al-baraah) as a religious
obligation more than a political attitude afterwards. Its rules and regulations
appeared in Ibadhi jurisprudence from the very beginning, and were practised
within the Ibadhi community as explained before, while we find no more of this
principle among non-Ibadhi Muslims in the same form as it exists among the
Ibadhis.
Examples of the influence of the system of al-walayah and al-baraah on Ibadhi
jurisprudence:
Apart from what has already been explained, the system of al-walayah and al-
baraah influenced Ibadhi jurisprudence in many ways. We may point out the
following examples an evidence of this influence:
189
I. With regard to zakat, some Ibadhi scholars held that it must be given
only to (ahl al-walayah). This opinion is reported from Aflah b. Abd al-
Wahhab, the third Imam of the Rustamid Imamate.158 According to
Dhumam b. al-Saib, an Ibadhi can give part of his zakat to his relatives
although they are non – Ibadhi Muslims.159 Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz and
Shu’aib held the view that all Muslims, Ibadhis or non Ibadhis, have a right to
zakat.160 Certain Ibadhi scholars state that zakat must be taken only from
(awliya) as it must be given only to the “awliya”.161 Abu Amr al-Rabi b.
Habib and Dumam b. al-Sib held it lawful for the Ibadhi person to take zakat
from the Muslim opponents if they knew about his opposition to their wrong
beliefs.162 al-Rabi reported that Abu Ubaidah strongly disliked taking zakat
from non-Ibadhis if they did not know that the person to whom they gave their
zakat possessed contrary views to theirs.163 al-Jitali reported that Abu
Ubaidah said, “We neither take zakat from them (non-Ibadhi Muslims) nor do
we give it to them.”164 Jitali further quotes from the response (Jawabat) of
Abu al-Mu’thir that he said, “The poor godless Ibadhi (Fasiq) is entitled to
zakat before the upright learned non-Ibadhi Muslim; because those who believe
in baraah for the Ibadhis and believe in loving and respecting them are not like
those who think that the Ibadhis are wrong and believe in ‘baraah’ from them;
the latter do not deserve zakat from Ibadhis.”165 During secrecy (kitman)
zakat must be given only to (al-awliya). If there are no “awliya” to whom
zakat can be given, it must be given to the poor Ibadhis; if these two categories
are not available, then Ibadhis should give their zakat to the poor weak non-
Ibadhi Muslims who cannot do them any harm.166
II In the matter of performing Hajj on behalf of another person, some
Ibadhi scholars held that the Ibadhi must not perform Hajj for another person
unless he is a (waliy). Others made it lawful with the condition that he should
not make dua (pray) for him.167 It is reported that the mother of Abu
Maymun al-Nufusi was asked before her death about her will and who was
going to carry it out for her. She pointed to her son Abu Maymun and said, “I
leave it to that one in the cradle.” When Abu Maymun grew up, he wanted to
perform Hajj for his mother, for she could not be considered as a ‘waliy’ with
the testimony of one woman. But Ibn Abbad al-Misri made it lawful for him
to perform Hajj for her and said that the testimony of one pious woman in this
case was sufficient.168 A similar story is reported about Amrus b. Fath.169
III On the question of Adalah (The quality of religious probity and moral
integrity which a witness must possess for his testimony to be admissible),170
only a (waliy) is Adl, and his testimony is admissible in all cases. The person in
the state of baraah is not Adl and his testimony is unreliable. The person in the
state of ‘reservation’ (wuquf) is regarded as one of the Muslims in general (ahl
al-Jumlah). The testimony of this group is admissible in all cases except those
190
I. Jitali, Sharh al-Nuniyah., Ms II, 2; Ibn Manzur, Lisan al-Arab, Bulaq, 1307 H., XX,
287-97
2. Abu al-Rabi Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf, Tuhaf., 4b; Malshuti, Jahalat., Ms. 41; Abu Ammar
Abd al-Kafi, Sharh al-Jahalat., Ms. 58b; al-Sufi, Uthman b. Khalifah, Sualat., Ms. 108; Ahmad
b. Bakr, Masail al-tawhid., Ms. 4; Jitali, op. Cit., II, 2.
3. Amr b. Jumai, Aqidat al-tawhid., Cairo, 1353 H., 69.
4. Shammakhi, Sharh Aqidat al-tawhid., Cairo 1353 H. 64.
5. Ibid., 83.
6. Ibid., 48; Imam Aflah b. Abd al-Wahhab, Jawabat., Ms. 2.
7. Ibid, 2.
8. Talati, Nukhbat al-matin., Ms. 10; Shammakhi, op. Cit.,69
9. Talati, Sharh Aqidat al-tawhid., Cairo, 1353 H., 69.
10. Ahmad b. Abdullah al-Kindi, K. al-Takhsis, Ms.5.
11. Abu Ammar, Sharh al-Jahalat., 58b; Jitali, op. Cit., II, I.
12. Shammakhi, op. Cit., 48.
13. Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf, Tuhaf, 5b.
14. Al-Kindi, op. Cit., 5.
15. Jitali, Qawaid., 47.
16. Abu Ammar, op. Cit., 58b; al-Kindi, op. Cit., 7; Warijlani, al-Dalil., Ms.
17. Al-Kindi, op. cit., 7; Salimi, Mashariq., 347.
191
104. Ibid., 84
105. Goldziher, Muslim Studies, (English translation), (1967), I, 55
106. Zawzani, Sharh al-Muallaqat., editor Muhammad Ali Hamadallah, Damascus, 1963,
110-111
107. Ibn Manzur, Lisan., (Beirut, 1956), IV, 374, IX, 490, XX, 261; Jawad Ali, Tarikh al-
Arab, Baghdad, 1950, I, 366
108. Mahmud Shukri al-Alusi, Bulugh al-Arab fi ma’rifat ahwal al-Arab., 2nd edition, Cairo,
1924, III, 27-29
109. The translation o these two lines is given by Professor Arberry as follows: “Unceasingly I
tippled the wine and took my joy, unceasingly I sold and squandered my hoard and my
patrimony till all my family deserted me, every one of them, and I sat alone like a lonely camel
scabby with mange.” The seven odes., 1957, 86
110. Ibn Hisham, Sirah., 2nd edition, Mustafa al-Saqqa and others, Cairo, 1955, I 350; Cf.
Guillaume, The life of Muhammad, 159ff.
111. Al-Kindi, Takhsis., 29
112. Qur’an: VIII, 72; Also IV, 89
113. Qur’an: X, 117-118
114. Ibn Hisham., Op. cit
115. Darjini, Tabaqat., 272; Shammakhi, Siyar, 111-12
116. Isfahani, Aghani, XXIII, 115
117. Anonymous, Majmu Ajwibah, Ms. 38
118. Jitali, Qanatir al-Khairat., My edition, Cairo, 1965, I, 164
119. Jitali, op. cit, 165; Darjini, Tabaqat., 239
120. Shammakhi, Siyar, 85; Darjini, op. cit., 231-32
121. Shammakhi, op. cit., 120; Darjini, op. cit., 231; Wisyani, Siyar, 62
122. Shammakhi, op. cit., 86; Darjini, op. cit., 229-230
123. Cf. supra, 249 ff
124. Cf. supra, 256
125. Jitali, Qawaid., 28; Shammakhi, op. cit., 76; Warijlani, al-Dalil., 150a ff. According to
him, Jabir gave orders for the killer of Khardalah to be killed. He says that Khardalah was an
Ibadhi, and his killer killed him for that reason
126. For more details see below, 397 ff
127. Cf. infra, 406 ff
128. Shammakhi, Siyar., 89
129. Barradi, Jawahir., 158 ff
130. Ibid., 161. The expression “renounced him,” (tabarrau minh) is given only in the text of
195
the letter of Ibn Ibad in Sharh Aqidat al-tawhid of al-Qutb, 245. It is not given in al-Jawahir
of al-Barradi (Mss. Of al-Jawahir were also consulted), nor is it given in the text contained in
the Umani Ms.
131. Barradi, op. cit., 164
132. Abu Qahtan, Sirah., Ms. 18-22
133. Ibid., 23
134. Darjini, Tabaqat., 198
135. Qur’an: XLIX, 10. The translation quoted here is from Rodwell, The Koran., 1968,
469
136. Muhammad b. Mahbub, Sirah., Ms. (part of Ms. Of mixed contents), 199
137. Abu Qahtan, Sirah., 26
138. Barradi, Jawahir., 163; Cf. al-Ruqaishi, Misbah., Ms. 14-28
139. Al-Rabi b. Habib, Musnad., I, 12-13
140. Warijlani, al-Adl., II, 270-307; Abu Qahtan, Sirah., Ms. 26; Barradi, Jawahir., 97
141. Bisyani, Sirah., 24
142. Ibid., 24
143. Muqaddimat al-tawhid wa Shuruhuha., editor Abu Ishaq, Cairo, 1353, 52-53
144. Ibn Midad, Sifat Nasab al-Ulama., Ms.9
145. Bisyani, Sirah., 24
146. Ibid., 19
147. Imam Abd al-Wahhab, Jawabat., Ms. 27
148. Warijlani, Dalil, 99b-100a
149. Loc. Cit
150. Abu Qahtan, Sirah., 18
151. Jahiz, Bayan., II, 105
152. Tabari, Tarikh., V, 256
153. Tabari, Tarikh, V, 257
154. For the views of the Khawarij on this issue see: Al-Shahrastani, Milal., I, 166, 169, 173;
al-Baghdadi, al-Farq bain al-firaq., ed. Kawthari, 45-67
155. Tabari, Tarikh, V, 191
156. Ibid., V, 566
157. Mubarrad, Kamil., III, 909-10. Shahrastani, Milal., 181
158. Aflah, Jawabat., I, 31; Ibn Khalfun, Ajwibah, 28 (Infra II, text no. 3)
159. Ibid, V, 566
196
CHAPTER VI
MANIFESTATIONS (ZUHUR):
Zuhur means the proclamation of the independent Imamate. During the state
of manifestation Ibadhis elect their own Imam, who should rule them according
to the Qur’an, sunnah, and the example of the rightly guided Imams.4 This is
the principle stage which must be maintained by Muslims. The Prophet died
leaving the Muslims in the stage of manifestation (zuhur).5 It is obligatory for
Muslims to maintain this state in order to execute the commands of God.
Hadd punishments, the Friday prayers, the collection of zakat and protection
tax (jizyah), fighting such enemies as Polytheists and rebels (al-bughat) the
proper division of spoils and zakat, none of these obligations can be carried out
without the authority of the Imam.6 Ibadhi scholars cite the Caliphates of Abu
Bakr and Umar as examples of the stage of manifestation in early Islam.
Whenever Muslims attain satisfactory conditions of proper, wealth, and
knowledge of religion, so that they can execute the commands of God, and
when they number about half of the enemy around them, they must proclaim
the Imamate and elect their own Imam from among their outstanding men.8
The Imam had to implement the orders of God as long as his followers
numbered more than forty. If their number becomes less, he must proclaim the
dissolution of the Imamate.9
198
Both secrecy (kitman) and the sacrifice of one’s life, (shira), can operate at the
same time; for shira is not more than a voluntary action of sacrificing one’s life;
taken by a group of not less than forty men who sacrifice their lives in the way
of God in order to encourage the rest of their community to change the unjust
rule of the enemies of God.17
is slain, or conquers, We shall bring him a mighty wage….,”20 and this verse,
“But other men there are that sell themselves desiring God’s pleasure.”21
The first person who practised Shira was Abu Bilal Mirdas b. Hudair. The idea
of Shira or Khuruj (coming out) occurred to him when he saw the harm caused
by Ubaidullah b. Ziyad to his fellow-Muslims.22 His comment on the
situation was, “Surely, being content with tyranny is an offence, and drawing
the sword and frightening the people is grave, but we come out and fight no-
one but those who do us wrong.”23 Abu Bilal used to elect among the
Muslims, the most trustworthy and outstanding men for the task of Shira. He
explained the conditions of Shira in the following words in which he used to
address every person who wished to join him; “You go out to fight in the way
of God desiring His pleasure, not wanting anything of the goods of the present
World, nor have you any desire of it, nor will you return to it. You are the
abstemious and the hater of this life, the desirous for the World to Come,
trying all in your power to obtain it. Going out to be killed and for nothing
else. So know that you are going to be killed and have no return to this life;
You are going forward and will not turn away from righteousness till you come
to God. If such is your concern, go back and wind up you needs and wishes of
this life, pay you debts, purchase yourself, take leave of your family and tell
them that you will never return to them. When you have done so I will accept
your pledge.”24
Some scholars suggest that the state of Shira was practised first during the
Meccan period of the Prophet’s life. They point out that the Prophet declared
Islam openly when the number of his followers reached forty,25 and was
directed by the Qur’an to leave the house of al-Arqam b. Abi al-Arqam which
was “the centre of his preaching activities.”26 When he had passed the stage
of secrecy, God revealed to him, “O Prophet, God suffices thee, and the
believers who follow thee.”27 According to Shaikh Muhammad Yusuf
Atfaiyish, this verse was revealed in Mecca and was included afterwards in the
chapter of the spoils (al-Anfal) which was revealed in Madina.28 However, it is
difficult to agree with the suggestion that the stage of Shira in Ibadhi doctrine
was derived from the above-mentioned event in the Prophet’s life. Even if the
circumstances were similar, which they were not, there is still a great difference,
which lies in the fact that the timing of such actions in the Prophet’s life was
directly determined by revelation. The other thing is that all Muslims had to
follow in any action the Prophet had to take, especially if the Qur’an
commanded it, but the Ibadhis did not consider Shira as an individual
obligation; it was a voluntary duty only. This was one of the main principles
about which they differed from the Azraqites who considered Khuruj as an
individual obligation.29
200
in secret to avoid suppression by their enemies who will not allow the Ibadhis
to profess their beliefs if they discovered them. In this sense, hiding one’s
beliefs is the best way to preserve them. So ‘secrecy’ becomes an obligation in
such a case.37 Ibadhis started their movement in secrecy to avoid suppression
by the Umayyad rulers. Both Ibadhi leaders Jabir b. Zaid and his successor
Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah acted in the stage of secrecy (kitman).
All their activities were carried out in secret. During this time, secrecy was
recommended almost in everything; it is reported that Dhuman b. al-Saib, a
pupil of Jabir and one of the leading Shaikhs of the Ibadhis community of
Basrah, said, “Why is it that one of you hides his money and shows his religion;
perhaps he will come across someone who will wrest it from him?!”38 Ibadhi
scholars claim that the stage of secrecy (kitman) in their doctrine is derived
from the life of the Prophet; but they differ in fixing the exact period of secrecy
in the life of the Prophet. According to Shaikh Muhammad Yusuf Atfaiyish, it
is the period between the beginning of the revelation up to the time when the
number of the Muslims reached forty by Umar b. al-Khattab declaring his
acceptance of Islam.39 Abu Sulaiman Dawud b. Ibrahim al-Talati regards all
the period before the Prophet’s immigration to Madina as a stage of secrecy,40
while Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi says, “The Prophet stayed in Mecca for some
time after the revelation, in secrecy.”41 It seems that he meant the period of
three years of the prophethood before the revelation of this verse:
“Proclaim what you have been ordered and turn aside from the polytheists.”42
However, this was the basis on which Ibadhi scholars furnished the proof for
the obligation of secrecy (kitman) as a religious duty ordered in the Qur’an.
After the collapse of the Rustamid Imamate in Tahert in 909 A.D. Ibadhis of
North Africa tried to revive their Imamate under the leadership of Abu Khazr
Yaghla b. Zaltaf, but they lost the battle of Baghy which they fought against
the Fatimids on the year 358 A.H.43 After this the Ibadhis entered the stage
of secrecy up to our times. No attempt was made afterwards by the Ibadhis of
North Africa to establish a new Imamate. The regulations for the stage of
secrecy as explained by Abu al-Abbas Ahmad b. Bakr are that, “the Ibadhis
must gather and appoint a leader to whom they pay their zakat and alms-
giving (huquq).44 He takes it from the pious among them and distributes it
among the pious ones. They must visit each other and form the ‘majalis’ for
teaching their doctrine and worshipping God. They must also hold collective
prayers and carry out all that they can of the duty of enjoining good and
prohibiting evil”.45 Ibadhi communities during the time of secrecy become
underground organisations which work in secret to keep the unity of the
community and the teachings of the Ibadhi school.
The stage of secrecy which began in North Africa after the defeat of the Ibadhis
202
in Baghy, produced the system of the Azzabah. This system is, in many
aspects, similar to the organisation of the Ibadhi Shaikhs of Basrah in the times
of Jabir b. Zaid and Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Abi Karimah.46 In every Ibadhi
gathering Azzabah councils were formed to look after the affairs of the people.
The councils had to be formed of the best people in the community, of special
qualities and for special tasks. During secrecy, the Azzabah councils exercise
the full authority of the Imam in ruling the Ibadhi society in religious and
social affairs. Since they were established, these councils are still in action in
Wad Mzab, but in both Ibadhi communities of Jabal Nufusah and Jerba Island
they were dissolved during the Ottoman rule. A detailed study of the Azzabah
system, its rules and regulations, and the role it played in the Ibadhi
communities and education will be an interesting one, and of great value.47
In the following few pages it is aimed to pinpoint the laws resulting from the
former division of the stages of the Ibadhi community (masalik al-din) in the
Ibadhi jurisprudence.
There is not much to be said about the stages of difa and Zuhur here, except
that religious dissimulation (taqiyah) does not behove the Imams of Difa and
zuhur;48 this rule applies to the Shurat as well.49 Among modern Ibadhi
scholars, Shaikh Muhammad Yusuf Atfaiyish objected to this opinion regarding
the Imam of Zuhur, ‘for,” as he argues, “if religious dissimulation is lawful for
individuals to save their lives, the question of the Imamate must be of greater
importance.”50
Concerning the stage of difa, it is already mentioned that the Imamate of
defence (Imamat al-difa) dissolves automatically after the end of the war, but
some scholars hold that the Imamate of defence can remain after the end of the
war as well.51
Regarding the stage of shira, it has already been mentioned that it is a
voluntary duty for more than forty persons, and that they must pray full prayer
during their revolt though they are far from their original homes. In case the
Shurat wanted to take over during the Imamate of defence, they have all the
right to do so, for the Imam of the Shurat, for his intention of sacrificing his life
for the cause of the Ibadhi community, is more entitled to the right of
leadership than the Imam of difa.52 Apart from this, all the laws of the Shurat
are the same as those of the Ibadhi community during kitman.53
Among the four stages, secrecy (kitman) was of great influence on Ibadhi
jurisprudence in North Africa. Abu Ya’qub al-Warijlani, discussed in details
the laws of kitman in his two books, al-Dalil, and al-Adl wa al-insaf. The most
important aspect is the suspension of the hadd punishment during kitman.
According to Warijlani, Ibadhis regarded the stage of kitman of their
203
community of the same conditions as the corresponding stage in the life of the
Prophet in Mecca before hijrah when no hadd punishments were revealed
yet.54 However, some Ibadhi scholars acted contrary to this rule on certain
occasions on the basis that secrecy (kitman) takes the laws of zuhur whenever it
is possible, though that zuhur must not take the laws of kitman.55 The only
exception to the decision of the suspension of the hudud is killing those who
defame the Ibadhis. Such people are to be killed by any means at any time
during the four stages.56
During kitman Ibadhis have to live under the rule of tyrants. Special rules were
laid down for Ibadhis regarding their relationship with ‘tyrants’ in the time of
kitman. The main principle is that the Ibadhis must not be of any help to
tyrants in their rule, so they must not hold any posts for them.57 The
exception to this rule is that those members of the Ibadhi community who are
known for their opposition to the ‘tyrants’ and were capable of commanding
them to good and forbidding them from evil, such members can hold posts in
the rule of ‘tyrants’; they can lead their troops in jihad, be in charge of the
spoils (ghanaim), Qadiship, or futya (delivering legal opinions on religious
questions). Ibadhis, in this attitude, follow the example of Ibn Abbas, Jabir b.
Zaid, al-Hasan al-Basri and Shuraih al-Qadi. All these great scholars were
known for their opposition to the rule of ‘tyrants’ and held posts under them.
The condition for such an attitude is to run the posts according to the shari’ah
and not fear anybody in practising justice.58
If the members did not have the same qualities as those mentioned they must
not be in charge of any post which is related to the public interest and might
harm people, such as being in charge of the market, or shurtah (police), or
hisbah, etc., but there are certain jobs which they can hold such as calling for
prayers (adhan, leading the prayers, lecturing in mosques, and teaching in the
schools.59
There are certain occasions on which the ‘tyrants’ force Ibadhis to act or speak
contrary to their beliefs. In such circumstances, Ibadhi school allows its
followers to use a special dispensation (rukhsah) under the principle of religious
dissimulation (taqiyah) to avoid the punishment of death. They can, for
example, say that there is more than one God, or claim walayah for the enemies
of God, and baraah from the true believers, or give false testimony, or tell lies,
all these with the tongue only without believing it. They also can eat during
the day in Ramadhan, or eat carrion, blood, or pork, all this to avoid the
punishment of death. If the punishment is, for instance, imprisonment, and
they know that they will not die in prison of hunger or thirst, or some other
cruel punishment, they must not then take the advantage of the special
dispensation to avoid imprisonment, for it is lawful only for avoiding death.60
204
However, there are certain actions that they must not do even if that should
cause them the loss of their lives, such as slaying the innocent, or seizing
people’s property or wasting it, or giving up their weapons to the enemies, or
drinking wine, committing adultery, or eating and drinking the unclean
(najas).61
Although the Ibadhis held it lawful to live under the rule of ‘tyrants’ during
kitman, the most commendable attitude for members of the Ibadhi community
is to keep away from tyrants and to be of any help to them.62
On the other hand, Ibadhis must pray Friday prayers with the tyrants, and join
them in the daily prayers in order to keep collective prayers.63
It is also lawful for the Ibadhis to take gifts from the ‘tyrants’ if they give them,
nut they must not ask the ‘tyrants’ for them.64 The Nukkar, however,
objected to this, and this was one of the topics on which they differed from the
other Ibadhi scholars.65 Besides, Ibadhis, although living under the rule of
‘tyrants’, must have their own organisation to look after their affairs, and to
plan for the safety of their community and to preserve the teachings of their
schools; in other words, to prevent the Ibadhis from melting into the large
body of their opponents, and to prepare for ‘manifestation’.
1. Abu Zakariya al-Jannawani, al-Wad., 29; Aqidat al-tawhid, 17ff; Amr b. Jumai, Aqidat al-
tawhid, 50-54, Ahmad b. Bakr, Masail al-tawhid, My edition, 24
2. Shammakh, Siyar, 372; Darjini, Tabaqat, 340
3. Loc. Cit; Ahmad b. Bakr, op. cit, 24; Abu al-Rabi Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf, Tuhaf, 32
4. Darjini, Tabaqat, 5, Ahmad b. Bakr, op. cit., 25
5. Shammakhi, Sharh Aqidat al-tawhid, 50
6. Loc. Cit.,
7. Loc. Cit; al-Qutb, Sharh Aqidat al-tawhid., 113-114
42. Qur’an: XV, 94. Cf. Guillaume, The life of Muhammad. Oxford 1967, 117
43. Darjini, Tabaqat., 129
44. Cf. Jitali, Qawaid., Ms. 184
45. Ahmad b. Bakr, Masail al-tawhid., 24
46. Cf. Lewicki, article “Halkah,” E.I. 2nd edition
47. Cf. Rubinacci, “Un antico documento di vita cenabitica musulmana.” A.I.O.N., Vol. X, 37-
78
48. Abu Ammar, Mujaz., Ms. II, 124. Cf. supra, 377
49. Cf. Shammakhi, Qasim b. Sulaiman, Sharh al-lu’lu’ah., Ms. 420
50. Al-Qutb, Jawabat., Ms. (fragments in my collection); al-Harithi, Isa b. Salih, Khulasat al-
wasa’il fi tartib al-masa’ii., II, 466
51. Al-Qutb, Sharh Aqidat al-tawhid., 113
52. Shammakhi, Siyar, 92; Darjini, Tabaqat, 238-39
53. Warijlani, Dalil, 149b-150a
54. Warijlani, al-Adl, Ms. II, 292-93
55. Wisyani, Siyar., 106; Darjini, op. cit., 378
56. Warijlani, al-Adl., Ms. II, 296
57. Salim b. Dhakwan, Sirah., Ms. 222
58. Warijlani, Dalil, 108a-b; al-Adl., II, 314-322
59. Loc. Cit.
60. Ahmad b. Muhammad b. Bakr, al-Jami., (Abu mas’alah), 108
61. Ibid., 109; For more details about the Ibadhis concept of religious dissimulation (taqiyah)
and the laws related to it, Cf. Ibn Barakah, al-Jami (Ms.), 61-65; Musabi, Hashiyah ala al-
Musarrih., (Ms.), 109b-111a; and Salimi, Mashariq anwar al-uqul., Cairo, 1314, 456-461.
62. Cf. supra, 413-14
63. Ahmad b. Muhammad b. Bakr, Masail al-tawhid., 25
64. Abu al-Rabi Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf, Tuhaf., (Ms.), 39a
Cf. supra. 269
207
RECAPITULATION
During its history, the religion of Islam passed through various stages which
left their mark, one way or another, on the structure of this religion, its laws
and civilisation. The original features of the religion as it first appeared in the
early Muslim community underwent certain changes (in different ways) which
affected its primitive form. This, however, does not apply in every instance.
There are still a few cases of Islamic communities close to the oldest form of
Islam which exist today, and which struggled hard throughout history to
preserve that distinctive early character. This is evident in one of the oldest
sects in Islam, the Ibadhis.
Contrary to what is generally held, they (the Ibadhis) were not a branch of the
Kharijite movement, moderate or otherwise, but, as appears to me through the
study of Sunni as well as sectarian Islam, the Ibadhis seem to represent the
pristine spirit of the religion of Islam struggling in the face of the political and
social changes caused by the rapid expansion of the Islamic empire.
The building of the new empire made it imperative that the role of power in its
material forms should occupy the first place. The pre-Islamic measures for
obtaining power started to re-appear and replace the new values established by
the new religion of Islam. It was through the office of the third Caliph,
Uthman b. Affan that the Umayyads made their way to the important
positions in the government. Marwan b. al-Hakam, who had been exiled by
the Prophet and remained in exile during the Caliphateof Abu Bakr and Umar,
was brought back to Medina by Uthman and became one of the closest and
most influential figures in Uthman’s court. So also Abdullah b. Sad b. Abi
Sarh, who was ordered by the Prophet to be execute don the day of the
conquest of Mecca, but was protected and given refuge by Uthman, became
his governor of Egypt. This way of controlling affairs during the last six years
of Uthman put more power in the hands of his kinsmen, and to some extent
aroused the anger and resentment of Muslims in various places. They gathered
from far and wide and came to Medina, the capitalof the Caliphate at that time
to change what they regarded as erroneous policy. This move brought about
the death of Uthman, and soon Ali b. Abi Talib was elected fourth Caliph in
Medina. At this point commenced the endless civil wars among Muslims.
Although the parties which arose immediately follow the path of Uthman tried
to justify their struggle for power by religious arguments, it soon became clear
that the issue was a straight fight for the Office of the Caliphate as the highest
post in the new empire, or, according to the satirical expression of Malik b.
Anas, “By God, they fought for nothing nut a dust coloured mess of tharid, (al-
tharid al-a’far)”1
After Ali had settled his account with Talhah and al-Zubair, he had to face
208
Mu’awiyah b. Abi Sufyan who was demanding vengeance for the death of
Uthman. At the beginning it seemed clear to the supporters of Ali that the
claim of Mu’awiyah was nothing but an excuse for opposing the new Caliph,
and therefore Ali should fight Mu’awiyah and his supporters until they
accepted his authority. When Ali accepted arbitration, a large number of his
supporters abandoned him and elected as their new Amir, Abdullah b. Wahb
al-Rasibi, and renounced Ali as Caliph. Nevertheless, these people, most of
whom were killed by Ali in al-Nahrawan and were known by the name Ahl al-
Nahr or al-Muhakkimah, were the first party to try to establish a leading role
in the new Islamic community outside Quraish, who were respected by the rest
of the Arab tribes before Islam as guardians of the Holy House in Mecca, and
who kept the means of power after Islam within their own hands. After the
death of Ali, his son al-Hasan was ready to compromise for a settlement with
the Umayyads after receiving an assurance that he would be the Caliph on the
death of Mu’awiyah. The Umayyads established their strong rule over the
Muslim world and were able to suppress their Qurashite opposition led by the
Shiites, i.e. the party of Ali, or by Ibn al-Zubair. The struggle for the power
among the Quraish was confined to the two houses of Bin Umayyah and Bin
Hashim. When the power of the Umayyads declined in the vastly expanding
empire, the Abbasids took over, and so the struggle for power continued with
scant respect for the principles of Islam and by using all means for obtaining
power.
The Muhakkimah set the first practical example for non-Qurashites to take
their share in the struggle for the new values of Islam and in implementing
them in political life. But when Mu’awiyah proved his firm control over the
Islam territories through powerful leaders, it was impossible to launch a
successful attack, which could change the whole situation. Some military
moves were made as a reaction to contemporary events; these manifested
themselves in the wars fought mainly by Kharijites. Meanwhile, the Ibadhi
movement was founded in Basrah, and underwent careful and conscious
planning – to imitate the policy of the Prophet in Mecca surrounded by
powerful enemies – with the aim of restoring the just Islamic Imamate and the
true Muslim community on a religious basis. This movement was founded by
Jabir b. Zaid, an outstanding tabi'i who studied under a large number of
celebrated Companions of the Prophet, and as a result, the Ibadhi community
was the product of an educational intellectual movement which had to deepen
its roots and gain support in the contemporary Muslim world, through a
training based on strict adaptation of the Islamic teachings as preserved by the
leaders of the movement n theory and practice. This position of the Ibadhis
enabled them not only to form a clear view of politico-religious situation of
early Islam, but also to oppose what they regarded as erroneous views of the
209
Kharijites, and to refute them at the very beginning of their movement. So the
Ibadhis continued to preserve the closest practical version of Islam in a living
community. For various reasons the Ibadhis gained large support among the
Azdis and the Arab tribes of Hadramawt and Yemen, as well as some major
Berber tribes of North Africa, and by the early decades of the second century
H., they (Ibadhis) were able to establish their own states in Southern Arabia
and in North Africa.
After the death of Jabir b. Zaid in 93 H., Ibadhis withdrew from the
surrounding population into a secret organisation which had developed and
kept to its own doctrine. Since then the Ibadhi school has retained its
independent features which present the old Islamic teachings in the Traditions
and the Athar reported through certain tabi’un from the Companions of the
Prophet, Professor Sergeant, speaking about the Zaydis, said, “The Zaydis
appear to represent in the early stages of their development a form of Islam
closest to the original primitive theocratic shape of the faith.”2 The Ibadhis
would fit this description perhaps more than the Zaydis since their system of
law and their doctrines were formulated earlier. Ibadhi authorities also confirm
this view and admit that the Zaydis, of all Islamic schools, are the closest to
them. Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi points out only three issues of difference
between the two schools: the question of the Imamate; their approval of Ali’s
acceptance of arbitration; and the regarding as Polytheists of those who held
that God is to be seen on the Last Day.3
The foundation of the Ibadhi school by Jabir b. Zaid, an eminent Traditionalist,
and its growth through the efforts of Abu Ubaidah Muslim b. Karimah and his
colleagues as an educational institution prevented its leadership from falling
into the hands of anyone other than the most upright and learned members,
whether during the time of ‘secrecy’ or ‘manifestation.’ Ibadhi jurisprudence
although based on material reported by Ibadhi authorities alone used the same
methods as the rest of the Muslim schools in forming opinions. However, the
Ibadhi school can be easily distinguished by the fact that its legal system was
very much concerned with the moral conduct of its followers. In other words,
observing the spirit of the law as well as the letter of the law. An example of
this appears in the acts which causes the breaking of fasting and ablution,
among which only the Ibadhis include all immoral acts such as telling lies,
slander an suchlike, listening to slander or music etc. and looking into others’
houses or eyeing foreign women etc. In this respect, the system of ‘walayah’
and ‘baraah’ developed by Ibadhis was mainly based on full observation of the
religious obligations in order that the person might be taken as a ‘waliy’ and
accordingly receive all rights due to him from fellow Ibadhis. This attitude
regarding moral conduct of the person covered other aspects of faith such as
excluding grave sinners from the right to intercession by the Prophet on the
210
Last Day, and the belief that grave sinners are to abide in Hell unless they
repent before death. There are some other distinctive features of the Ibadhi
school, such as the suspension of the (hadd) punishments during the stage of
‘secrecy.’ And the laws laid down for this politico – religious stage. In the legal
and religious system there is a number of points on which the Ibadhi school
differs from the rest of the Islamic schools or from some of them. This was due
in fact to the texts on which those points were based. In some cases Sunni or
Shi'i authorities and vice-versa do not know the material used by Ibadhis.
The other main feature is that Ibadhis always have understood religion to be
one unit in its political, spiritual and legal aspects which should be carried out
in life simultaneously. When one of these aspects is suspended in certain stages
of the Ibadhi community, it is not out of negligence, but as a deliberate action
required by the current stage through which the community is passing, based
on the example of the Prophet’s practical life, and which should lead to the next
step of carrying out all teachings of the religion in suitable conditions. This
seems to be the reason why Ibadhis, for example, never accepted Sufism,
because it directs the activities of the Muslim mainly to the spiritual side and
does not care much for other aspects of religion. One of the early comments on
this point was made by Muhammad b. Mahbub (ob.260 H.) in his Sirah to the
Ibadhis of Hadramawt, “We learnt that certain people existed in your country
who made it their worship to wear wool during summer, and have doubts
about fighting the enemies of God by the sword.”4
( ) يتعبدون بلباس الصوف في الصيف ويتشككون في قتال أهل البغي بالسيف
As Ibadhis have always lived in simple remote communities their laws were not
affected by changes of environment or time, and remained in their original
form. Ibadhis always tried to live according to the divine law, and to adapt it
wherever they were and at all time. Special rules for the different stages of
politico – religious situations were formed at an early stage according to which
the Ibadhi community had to maintain its existence.
There remains a great deal to be done to form a clearer picture of the Ibadhi
communities and their development in different fields of activity. Very little is
known about the present situation in the various Ibadhi countries and these
Ibadhi communities need close study. There is still also a large body of original
Ibadhi works on Hadith, law, theology, history and to their files of knowledge
which deserves attention, and an extensive amount of new material awaits
patient examination and thorough inspection in order to have a more complete
view of the Ibadhi school.
2 Arberry (general editor), Religion in the Middle East., Art. “Zaydis”, II, 285
3 Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi, Mu'az (Ms.) II, 124
4 Muhammad b. Mahbub, Sirah, (Ms.) 279
BIBLIOGRAPHY
LIST OF MANUSCRIPTS:
Abdullah b. Abd al-Aziz, K. Nikah al-shighar..4 parts Baruniyah, Jerba Dar al-Kutub, Cairo
Abd al-Wahhab b. Abd al-Rahman b. Rustam, Jawabat, Baruniyah, Jerba… Cf my Article in
J.S.S., 15, I, 1970, 69-70
Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi b. Abi Ya’qub al-Tanawuti, Sharh al-Jahalat, 106 pp. Amhammad
al-Baruni, Jadu. Other copies in possession of Salim b. Ya’qub Jerba: Baruniyah, Jerba;
Marsawani, Ruhaibat and also in Mzab.
Al-Mujaz fi tahsil al-su’al wa talkhis al-maqal., II parts Mahfuz Ali al-Baruni, Jerba, Aiyub
Muhammad, Jannawan, Jadu.
Mukhtasar Tabaqat al-Mashaikh, (Baruni, Kabaw)
Sirat al-Halqah (Baruniyah, Jerba)
Abu Ghanim Bishr b. Ghanim al-Khurasani, al-Mudawwanah. 195 pp. The Collection of al-
Salimi. I possess a Xeroxed copy of this Ms.
Al-Mudawwanah al-Kubra, 2 vols. Tartib Muhammad Yusuf Atfaiyish. A copy
in my collection
Al-Diwan al-ma'rud ala Ulama al-Ibadhiyah, (Baruniyah, Jerba. Dar al-Kutub, Cairo)
Abu Ja'far Muhammad b. Ja’far, al-Jami, 2 vols. (Q. Binyizgin, and Bakilli Abd al-Rahman.
Barriyan, Mzab; Incomplete copy, Baruniyah, Jerba. Incomplete copy consisting of: Bab fi al-
diyat wa al-hudud. 77 pp. Marsawani, Ruhaibat)
Abu Khazr Yaghla b. Zaltaf, K al-Radd ala jami al-mukhalifin. Cf. J.S.S. 15, I, 82
Abu al-Mu’thir, al-Salt b. Khamis, Sirah, (Part of Ms. Of mixed contents from Oman).
Abu Nasr, Fath b. Nuh al-Malushai, Diwan Abi Nasr, (Collection of poems of Abu Nasr, in the
possession of Ali Milud al-Marsawani Ruhaibat)
Abu Qahtan Khalid b. Qahtan al-Hijari, Sirah, (part of Ms. Of mixed contents from Oman)
Abu al-Rabi Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf = Sulaiman b. Yakhlaf
Abu Sittah, Amr b. Muhammad, Sharh Tartib al-Musnad, 324 folios (al-Maqsi Jadu)
-Hashiyat al-Buyu, 148 folios (Marsawani, Ruhaibat)
Al-Qalhati, Abu Abdullah Muhammad b. Said al-Azdi. K. al-Kashf wal-bayan, 11, volumes
(B.M. or 2606 bound together) Amhammad al-Baruni, Jadu. Vol. 1 only)
Qatadah b. Di’amah al-Sadusi, Aqwal Qatadah, VII parts (part of the Ms of al-Diwan al-
ma’rud, Cf. Abu Ghanim
Al-Qutb, Muhammad Yusuf Atfaiyish, Jawabat wa Fatawa. (Maktabat al-Qutb, Binyizgin,
Mzab, a photocopy in my collection
Sharh Tabghurin, (al-Qutb, Binyizgin, Mzab)
Sharh Lamiyat Ibn al-Nazi. (Baruniyah Jerba)
Sharh al-Nil, (Several volumes, Baruni, Kabaw; Marsawani, Ruhaibat)
Al-Ruqaishi, Ahmad b. Abdullah, Misbah al-zalam ala Da’aim, al-qifah al-khamisah,)
containing the commentary on al-al-Lamiyah of Ibn al-Nazr. Dar al-Kutub, Cairo)
Al-Rustaqi, Khamis b. Said b. Ali. K. al-Minhaj. Part XV on marriage, 89 folios, (Baruni,
Kabaw) another number of parts in al-Baruniyah, Jerba, were consulted. (The complete book
is in XXI vols.)
Al-Sadwikshi, Abu Muhammad Abdullah b. Said, Jawab hawla salat al-Jumu’ah, (Part of Ms.
of mixed contents, Baruni, Kabaw)
Hashiyat al-Diyanat, (Several copies)
Hawashi ala al-sifr al-awwal min al-Idah., 77 folios, (Marsawani, Ruhaibat)
Said b. Tarit, Tarikh Ulama al-Jazirah,, Salim b. Ya’qub, Jerba)
Al-Sa’ighi, Salim b. Said, Kanz al-adib wa sulafat al-labib. Cambridge U.I. Add 2896)
Shabib b. Atiyah al-Omani, Sirah, (Part of Ms. of mixed contents from Oman)
Al-Shammakhi, Abu al-Abbas, Ahmad b. Said, Jawabat, (Baruni, Kabaw)
-Jawab li-Sulah al-Ghadamasi, (Baruni, Kabaw; Baruniyah, Jerba)
-l’rab mushkil al-Daaim, (Baruniyah, Jerba)
-Tahqiq al’ism wa’l-musamma., (Baruni, Kabaw, Marsawani, Ruhaibat)
-Sharh Mukhtasar al-Adl wa’l-insaf., Baruniyah, Jerba
Al-Shammakhi, Abu Amir Musa b. Amin, al-Luqat, 165 folios. (Incomplete copy, Baruni,
Kabaw)
Al-Shammakhi, Abu Sakin Amir b. Ali
-Idah: Idah Adillat abwab al-fiqh IV (Marsawani, Ruhaibat)
-Al-Diyanat, (My collection)
-Masail, (al-Ba’tur, Jerba)
Al-Shammakhi, Qasim b. Sulaiman b. Muhammad, Sharh Urjuzat al-Lu’lu’ah fi ilm al-tawhid,
464 pp (Salim b. Ya’qub, Jerba)
Al-Sufi, Abu Amr Uthman b. Khalifa, Risalah fi bayan kulli firqah. (A number of Mss. In my
collection
216
LIST OF ARTICLES
Allanche, US “Deux epitres de theologic abadite.” xxx 22 4936, 57-88
Baali, A. “Bibliographie ibadhite” Revur Algeriene, 1943-45, Part I 39-40
Basset R. “Les sanctuaires du Djebel Nefousa”. Journal Asiatique, mai’juin, 1899, 423-470 and
juillet-aout, 1899, 88-120
Bekri, Chaikh “Le Kharijisme berbere.” A.I.E.O. 15 (1977), 55-108
Crupi La Rosa G. “I trasmettitori della dottrina ibadita.” AION, N.S. 5 (1953), 123-139
Ennami A.K. “Description of New Ibadhi Mss. From North Africa. Journal of Scientific
Studies., Vol. 15, I, 1970. 63-87
Gabrieli, F. “Sulle Origin del Movimento Harigita.” Rend. Accad. Lincei, set 7, 3 91942-42)
110-117
Goichon. A.M. “La vie feminine au Mzab.” Revur du mondi Musulmani. Vil. 62, 1925
Heggoy, Willy N. “The Mozabites of Algeria Muslim World. Vol. XXXVII. 192-207
Kubiak, Wladyslaw, al-Makhtutat al-arabiyah fi Bulunia, Majallat Ma’had al-Makhtutat al-
Arabiyah. Vol. V. I Cairo 1959, 17-22
217
Kafali. Muh. “The rise of Kharijism according to Abu Said Muhammad b. Said al-Azdi al-
Qalhati."” The bulleting of the Faculty of Art, Cairo. XIV. I. 1952, 29-48
Kumar, Ravinder, ‘British attitude towards the Ibadhiyya revivalist movement in East Africa.”
Int. Stud., 3, (1962), 443-450
Lewicki, T. “Note sur la chronique ibadite d’ad-Dargini.” Rocznik Orientalistyezny XI, 1936,
146-172
“Une chronique ibadite Kitab al-Siyar d’Abdul-Abbas Ahmad as-Sammahi.” Revue etude.Isl.
1934, 59-78
“Les subdivisions de l’Ibadiyya.” Studia Islamica, IV 1958, 71-82
“Les historiens, biographes et traditionistes ibadites wahbites de Afrique du Nord
du VIII au XVI siecles Folio or 3 (1961) 1-134
“La repartition geographique des groupements ibadites dans l’Afrique du Nord au moyen-age.”
Rocznik or., 21 (1957), 301-343
“Les ibadites en Tunisie au moyen-age.” Conference tenue a la Bibliotheque de l’Academie
Polonaise de Rome, 17 Feb. 1958
“Quelques textes inedits en vieux berbere provenant d’une chronique Ibadite anonyme.” Revue
etud Isl. 1934, III, 1935, 257-296
“Melanges berbere ibadites.” Revue etud. Isl., 1936, 267-285
“Quelques textes inedits relatifs aux voyages des commercants et des missionaires ibadites nord-
africains au paus du Soudan occidental et central au Moyen Age.” Folio or 2 (1960), 1-27
“Un document ibadite inedit sur l’emigration des Nafusa du Gabrieli (Note supplementaire),
Folio or 2 (1960), 214-216
“Les Ibadites dans l’Arabie du Sud au moyen age.” Folio or 1, (1959) 3-17 Also 24 Int. Cong
Or, 362-364
“Al-Ibadiyya.” E.I. 2nd edition
-“Al-Nukkar.” E.I. supplement, 172-173
Marcy, G. “Le Dieu des Abadites et des Bargwata.” Hesp. 22 1963), 35-56
Milliot, L. “Recuel de deliberation des djema'a du Mzab.” Revue Etud Isl., Vol. XXI, 1939, 17-
230
Al-Na'imi, Salim. “Zuhur al-Khawarij.” Majallat al-Mama al-ilmi al-haqi, XV, 1967/1387,
10-35
Nallino, C.A. “Rapporti fra la dogmatica Mu’tazilita e quella degli Ibaditi dell’Africa
Settentrionale.” R.S.O. Vol. VII, Roma, 1916-18, 455-460
Rubinacci, R. “Notizia di alcuni manoscritti ibaditi presso l’Instituto Unversitario Orientale di
Napoli.” A.I.O.N. N.S. 3, (1949) 431-438
‘ll’Kitab al-Gawahir di al-Barradi.” A.I.O.N. N.S. 4 (1952) 95-110
“La purita rituale secondo gli Ibaditi.” A.I.O.N. N.S. 6 (1954-6), 1-41
“La professione di fede di al-Gannawuni.” A.I.O.N. XIV 1964, 552-592
218
“The Ibadhis.” In Religion in the Middle East. General editor A.J. Arberry,
Cambridge, 1969, II, 302-317
“ll califfo Abd al-Malik b. Marwan e gli Ibaditi A.I.O.N. also xxxxxx
documento.” Vol. X, 37-78
Sachau, E. ‘Uber die Reliksen Anschauungen der Ibaditischen Muhammedaner in Oman and
Ostafrika.” Mitthelungen des Seminars fin Orientalische Sprachen., Vol. II, 1899, 97-82
Schacht, J. “Bibliotheques et manuscrits abadites.” Revue Africaine. 100 (1956) 375-398
“Notes mozabites.” Al-Andalus, 22, (1957), 1-20
Shinar, Pessah. “Ibadiyya and orthodox reformism in modern Algeria.” Studies in Isl. His and
civilization. Scripta Hierosolynitana. IX 1961. 97-120
Smogorzewski, Z. “Essai de Bio-bibliographic Ibadite-Wahbite. Avant-propos.” Rocznik or., V,
1928, 45-47
“Un poeme abadite sur certaines divergences entre les Malikites et les Abadites.”
Rocznik or., II, 260-268
Strothmann, R. “Berber und Ibaditen.” Der Islam., XVII, (1928), 258-279.
Thomson, W. “Kharijism and Kharijites.” The Macdonald Presentation Volume, Princeton,
1933, 373-389
Veccia Valieri, L. “L’lmamato abadita dell Oman.” A.I.O.N., N.S. 3, (1949). 245-282
PUBLISHED WORKS
a) Ibadhi books
Abu al-Abbas Ahmad b. Muhammad b. Bakr, al-Jami (Abu mas’alah) Zanzibar, 1318
Abu Ammar Abd al-Kafi, K. Ikhtisar al-Jara’id, n.d. with other works
Abu Bakr Ahmad b. al-Nazr al-Omani, K. al-Da’aim, 2nd edition, Damascus, 1966
Abu Mahdi Isa b. Ismail al-Mas'abi, Jawab li-Abi Ali al-Bahluli, Lithogr. Tunis, 1321, with
other works
Abu Nasr. Fath b. Nuh al-Malushai, al-Qasidah al-nuniyah, Algiers (1352/1933; also with K.
al-Da’aim of Abu Bakr b. al-Nazr, Damascus 1966 pp 193-203
Al-manzumah al-ra`iyah fi al-salat, also in K. al-Da’aim pp 203-211
Abu Ras Muhammad Mu'nis al-ahibbah fi akhbar Jerbah, editor Muhammad al-Marzuqi, Tunis
1960
Abu Sittah, Muhammad b. Amr, Hashiyat al-Qawaid, Lithogr Cairo, 1297 II Hashiyat K. al-
Nikah of al-Jannawani, Lithogr, Cairo, 1343
Hashiyah on parts 3 and 4 of K. al-Idah of al-Shammakhi, Lithogr, Cairo 1309
Jawabat., Lithogr, Cairo 1315
219
Sharh Tartib al-Musnad. 3 vols. Zanzibar. 1304. Anonymous. Dhikr asma ba’d
Shuyukh al-Wahbiyah, Lithogr with the Siyar of al-Sham
Al-Ashyakh, Diwan: (a) K. al-Sawm, Lithogr, Cairo, 1315
(b) K. al-taharat, Lithogr, Cairo, 1315
Al-Barradi. Abu al-Fadl Abu al-Qasim b. Ibrahim, al-jawabu al-muntaqat fi ma akhalla bihi K.
al-Tabaqat., Lithogr, Cairo, 1302
Risalah fi ba’d al-haqa'iq, n.d. with other works.
Al-Baruni Abdullah b. Yahya, Sullam al-ammah wa al-mubtadi'in lima’rifat a’immat al-din,
Cairo, 1324
Al-Baruni, Abu al-Rabi Sulaiman, Mukhtasar tarikh al-Ibadhiyah, Tunis, 1938/1357
Al-Baruni, Muhammad b. Zakariya, Nisbat din al-Muslimin., Lithogr with the Siyar of al-
Shammakhi, Cairo, 1301
Al-Baruni, Sulaiman Basha, al-Azhar al-riyadiyah fi tarikh a’immat wa muluk al-Ibadhiyah,
Cairo, n.d. about 1324-1326 H, part 2 only
Dabbuz, Muhammad Ali, Tarikh al-Maghrib al-Kabir., 3 vols.
-Thawrat al-Jazair was Nahdatuha al-mubarakah
Al-Hadrami, Ibrahim b. Qais, A.K. Mukhtasar al-Khisal, 2 vols., Lithogr Cairo, 1310/1893
-b. Diwan al-saif al-Naqqad., 2nd edition, Damascus, n.d.
Al-Harith, Isa b. Salih, Khulasat al-wasail fi tartib al-masail., 2 vols. Edited by Izz al-din al-
Tanukhi, Damascus, n.d.
Al-Harith, Salih b. Ali, Ayn al-masalih fi Jawabat al-Shaikh Salih., edited by Izz al-din al-
Tanukhi, Damascus
Al-Jannawani, Abu Zakariya Yahya b. al-Khair Aqidat al-tawhid, Lithogr, Algiers, 1325
K. al-Nikah, Lithogr, Cairo, 1313 with the Hashiyah of Abu Sittah
K. al-Sawm, Lithogr, Cairo, 1310 New edition of this book is under preparation
K. al-Wad., ed. Abu Ishaq Ibrahim Atfaiyish, Cairo n.d.
Al-Jitali, Abu Tahir Ismail b. Musa, K. Qawaid al-Islam, Lithogr, Cairo 1297 with the
Hashiyah of Abu Sittah
K. al-Faraid and Maqayis al-juruh, Lithogr together, Cairo (8)
K. Qanatir al-khairat., 3 vols. Lithogr. Cairo 1307. Part I of my edition of this
book was published in Cairo, 1964
Mu’ammar, Ali Yahya, Ahkam al-safar fi al-Islam., Beirut, 1966
Ajwibah wa fatawa, Nalut, 1970
Al-Ibadhiyah fi mawkib al-tarikh
Nash’at al-Ibadhiyah., Cairo, 1964/1384
Al-Ibadhiyah fi Tunis, Beirut, 1966/1385
220
Ibn Hanbal, Ahmad b. Muhammad, ay Al-Ilal wa ma’rifat al-rijal ed. By Kocyigit, Ankara,
1963
g) al-Musnad, 6 vols. Cairo, 1313
Ibn Hawqal, Abu al-Qasim al-Nasibi, K. Surat al-ard, ed. J.H. Kramers, Leiden, 1939
K. al-Masalik wa al-mamalik, ed. M.J. de Goeje, Leiden, 1872
Ibn Hazm, Abu Muhammad Ali b. Ahmad b. Said,
a) Jamharat ansab al-arab, ed. Levi Provencal, Cairo, 1948
b) Mulakhas Ibtal al-ray wa’lqiyas wal-istihsan wal-taqlid wal-xxxx, ed. Said al-Afghani,
Damascus, 1379/1960
c) K- al-Fasl fi al-milal wal-ahwal wal-nihal, Cairo 1321, 6 vols.
d) Al-Ihkam li usul al-ahkam, 5 vols. Cairo, 1345-48
e) Al-Muhalla, 11 vols, Cairo, 1347-52 H
Ibn Hibban al-Busti, Muhammad, Mashahir ulama al-amsar, ed. By Manfred Fleischhammer,
Cairo, 1959/1379 H
Ibn Hisham, Muhammad, al-Sirah al-nabawiyah, ed Mustafa al-Saqqa and others, Cairo, 1955
Ibn Idhari al-Marrakashi, K. al-Bayan al-mughrib, ed. G.S. Colin and E. Levi Provencal,
Leiden, 1948
Ibn al-Imad, Abd al-Haiy, Shadharat al-dhahab fi akhbar man dhahab, Cairo, 1350h.
Ibn al-Jawzi, Abd al-Rahman b. Ali Sifat al-safwah. Haydarabad, 1356
Ibn Kathir, Ismail b. Umar al-Bidayah wa al-nihayah, 14 vols. Cairo, 1932
Ibn Khaldun, al-Ibar wa diwan al-mubtada wa al-khabar, 7 vols. Ed. By Dagher, Beirut,
1956/61
Ibn Khallikan, Ahmad, b. Muhammad, Wafayat al-ayan, ed. F. Wustenfeld. Gottingen, 1835
Ibn Khurdhadhabah, al-masalik wa al-mamalik, Leiden, 1309
Ibn Majah, Muhammad b. Yazid, Sunan, 2 vols., ed. By M.F. Abd al-Baqi, Cairo, 1373/1954
Ibn Manzur, Muhammad b. Mukarram, Lisan al-Arab, 20 vols. Bulaq, 1360-8
Ibn Miskawaih, Tajarib al-umam, ed. By L. Cactani, 1909
Ibn al-Nadim, al-Fihrist, ed. G. Flugel, Leipzig, 1871, also Cairo, 1348
Ibn al-Qaisarani, Muhammad b. Tahir, al-Jami bain rijal al-Sahihain, Haydarabad, 1323
Ibn al-Qaiyim,l’lam al-muwaqqi’in an Rabb al-alamin. 4 vols. Cairo n.d
Ibn Qutaibah Abdullah b. Muslim, al-ma’arif, ed. Muhammad al-Sawi, Cairo, 1934
Ibn Raziq, salil, History of the Imams and Sayyids of Oman, translated by George P. Badger,
London, 1871
Ibn Sad Muhammad, al-Tahaqat al-Kabir, ed. Edward Sachau, Leiden, 1904-1940, also Beirut,
1958/1377
225
Ibn Sallam, Al-Qasim b. Sallam, K. al-Amwal, ed. Muh Khalil Haras, Cairo, 1389/1969
Al-Isfarayini, Abu al-Muzaffar Tahir b. Muhammad, al-Tabsir fi al-din, Cairo 1940
Al-Istakhri, Ibrahim b. Muhammad, Masalik al-mamalik, Leiden, 1870
Al-Jahiz, Abu Uthman Amr b. Bahr, al-Bayan wa al-tabyin, 4 vols. Ed Muhammad Abd al-
Salam Harun, Cairo 1948-1950/1367-1369
Rasail al-jahiz, ed Harun, Cairo 1384/1965
Al-Uthmaniyah, ed Harun, Cairo, 1955/1374 H
Al-Khatib al-Baghdadi, Taqyid al’ilm, ed Y. Eche, Damascus, 1949
Al-Khazraji, Ahmad b. Abdullah, Khulasat Tahdhib al-Kamal, Cairo 1322
Al-Kulami, Muhammad b. Ya’qub, al-Kafi, 8 vols. Tehran, 1381
Lane, E.E. Arabic English Lexicon, 8 vols, Edinburgh, 1867
Lewicki T. Etudes ibadites Nord-Africaines, I, Warsaw, 1955
Macdonald, Duncan B. Development of Muslim Theology, jurisprudence and constitutional
theory, Beirut, 1965
Al-Malatai, Abu al-Hasan Muhammad b. Ahmad, al-Tanbih wa al-radd ala ahl al-ahwa wa al-
bida, ed al-Kawthari, Cairo, 1949/1368
Malik b. Anas, Muwatta with the commentary of al Suyuti, Cairo, 1348
Al-Mudawanah, narrated by Sahnun, Cairo 1323-24, 16 vols.
Margoliouth, D.S. The Lady Development of Muhammadan, London, 1964
Masqueray, Chronique A Abou Zakaria, Paris – Algiers, 1878
Mas'udi, Ali b. al-Husain, Muruj al-dhahab, 2 vols. Cairo, 1283/1867
McCarthy, Richard J. The theology of al-Ashari, The Arabic texts of al-Ash'ari's K. al-Luma
and Risalat istihsan al-khawd fi al-kalam, with briefly annotated translation, Beirut 1953
Al-Minqari, Nasr b. Muzahim Waq'at Siffin, Cairo, 1365 H
Motylinski, A. de C. L’Aqida des Abadhites, Recueil de Memoirs et de textes publies en
L'honeur du XIV Congres des Orientalistes, Algiers, 1905
Le Djebel Nefousa, Paris, 1899
Al-Mubarrad, Abu al-Abbas Muhammad b. Yazid, al-Kamil, 111 vols ed. Ahmad Shakir and
Zaki Mubarak, Cairo, 1356/1937
Muhammad b. al-Hasan, al-jami al-saghir, Cairo, 1302 H
Al-Muqaddasi, Abu Abdullah Muhammad b. Ahmad, Ihsan al-taqasim fi ma’rifat al-aqalim,
ed. M.J. de Goeje, Leiden, 1877
Muslim b. al-Hajjaj al-Qushairi, al-Salih, several editions
Al-Nasai, Ahmad b. Shu’aib, al-Suwan, with the commentary of al-Suyuti, Cairo n.d.
Al-Nawawi, Muhyi al-din b. Sharaf, Tahdhib al-asma, ed. R. Dozy, Cairo, n.d. also Gottingen,
226
1842
Nicholson, R.A. A Literary History of the Arabs, Cambridge, 1962
Pearson, .D. Indix Islamabad 1906-1965), 111 vols. Cambridge, 1985-1967
Pickthal, Mohammed Marmaduke, The Meaning of the Glorious Koran, 1956
Al-Qasimi, Muhammad Jamal al-din, Qawaid al-tahdith ed. Muhammad.